Aadel Collection

Report of the Special Rapporteur, Mr. Nigel S. Rodley, submitted pursuant to Commission on Human Rights resolution 1992/32

          
          GENERAL
          E l CN. 4 /1994/3 1
          6 January 1994
          Original: ENGLISH
          COMMISSION ON HUMAN RIGHTS
          Fiftieth session
          Item 10 (a) of the provisional agenda
          QUESTION OF THE HUMAN RIGHTS OF ALL PERSONS SUBJECTED TO ANY FORM OF
          DETENTION OR IMPRISONMENT, IN PARTICULAR:
          TORTURE AND OTHER CRUEL, INHUMAN OR DEGRADING TREATMENT OR PUNISHMENT
          Report of the Special Rapporteur, Mr. Nigel S. Rodley, submitted pursuant
          to Commission on Human Rights resolution 1992/32
          CONTENTS
          Paragraphs Page
          Introduction . . . 1 - 4 3
          I. MANDATE AND METHODS OF WORK . . . . . S - 23 4
          II. INFORMATION REVIEWED BY THE SPECIAL RAPPORTEUR
          WITH RESPECT TO VARIOUS COUNTRIES . . 24 - 665 10
          Algeria . . 24 - 36 10
          A ngola . . 37 - 39 13
          Bangladesh 40 - 51 14
          Bolivia . . 52 - 55 16
          Brazil . . 56 - 59 16
          Bulgaria . 60 - 62 17
          Burundi . . 63 - 68 18
          Cameroon . 69 - 83 19
          Chad . . 84 - 91 21
          Chile . . 92 - 145 23
          China . . 146 - 172 29
          Colombia . 173 - 188 40
          Cuba . . 189 - 199 42
          GE.94-10032 (E)
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 2
          CONTENTS ( continued)
          Paragraphs Page
          Dominican Republic 200 - 201 44
          Ecuador 202 - 208 44
          Egypt 209 - 226 45
          Equatorial Guinea 227 - 235 49
          Ethiopia 236 50
          Guatemala 237 - 240 51
          Haiti 241 - 260 52
          India 261 - 316 55
          Indonesia 317 - 343 65
          Iran (Islamic Republic of) 344 - 347 71
          Iraq 348 - 351 71
          Israel 352 - 358 73
          Italy 359 - 362 76
          Jordan 363 - 365 77
          Kenya 366 - 369 77
          Malawi 370 - 371 78
          Malaysia 372 - 376 79
          Mauritania 377 - 380 80
          Mexico 381 - 394 81
          Morocco 395 - 398 84
          Myanmar 399 - 403 85
          Nepal 404 - 418 86
          Nigeria 419 88
          Pakistan 420 - 425 88
          Peru 426 - 452 89
          Portugal 453 95
          Republic of Korea 454 - 468 95
          Romania 469 - 471 98
          Rwanda 472 - 474 99
          Saudi Arabia 475 100
          Senegal 476 100
          Sierra Leone 477 100
          South Africa 478 - 481 101
          Spain 482 - 499 102
          Sri Lanka 500 - 503 105
          Sudan 504 - 527 106
          Syria 528 110
          Tadzhikistan 529 - 530 110
          Thailand 531 - 532 111
          Togo 533 - 539 112
          Tunisia 540 - 549 113
          Turkey 550 - 631 115
          Yugoslavia 632 - 649 128
          United Kingdom 650 - 655 131
          United Republic of Tanzania 656 132
          Zaire 657 - 664 133
          Zambia 665 134
          III. CONCLUSIONS AND RECOMMENDATIONS 666 - 671 135
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 3
          Introduction
          1. At its forty-first session, the Commission on Human Rights adopted
          resolution 1985/33, in which it decided to appoint a special rapporteur
          to examine questions relevant to torture. Since then the mandate has
          been renewed by Commission resolutions 1986/50, 1987/29, 1988/32, 1990/34
          and 1992/32. In resolution 1992/32, the Commission extended the mandate for
          a period of three years. In pursuance of these resolutions, the Special
          Rapporteur submitted annual reports to the Commission, which are contained in
          documents E/cN.4/1986/1S, E/CN.4/1987/13, E/CN.4/1988/17 and Add.1,
          E/CN.4/1989/1S, E/cN.4/1990/17 and Add.1, E/CN.4/1991/17, E/cN.4/1992/17 and
          Add.1 and E/cN.4/1993/26.
          2. In its resolution 1993/40, the Commission took note of the resignation
          of Mr. P. Kooijmans as Special Rapporteur and requested the Chairman, after
          consultations within the Bureau, to appoint an individual of recognized
          international standing as his successor. As a result, Mr. Nigel S. Rodley
          (United Kingdom) was appointed Special Rapporteur.
          3. In conformity with resolutions 1992/32 and 1993/40, the newly appointed
          Special Rapporteur hereby presents his first report to the Commission.
          Chapter I deals with a number of aspects pertaining to the mandate and methods
          of work. Chapter II consists mainly of a review of the information
          transmitted by the Special Rapporteur to Governments, as well as the replies
          received, from 15 December 1992 to 15 December 1993. Chapter III contains
          conclusions and recommendations.
          4. In addition to the above-mentioned resolutions, several other resolutions
          adopted by the Commission on Human Rights at its forty-ninth session are also
          pertinent within the framework of the mandate of the Special Rapporteur and
          have been taken into consideration in examining and analysing the information
          brought to his attention with regard to the different countries. These
          resolutions are, in particular:
          (a) Resolution 1993/41, entitled “Human rights in the administration
          of justice”, in which the Commission called upon its special rapporteurs
          and working groups to give special attention to questions relating to the
          effective protection of human rights in the administration of justice, in
          particular with regard to unacknowledged detention of persons, and to provide,
          wherever appropriate, specific recommendations in this regard, including
          proposals for possible concrete measures under advisory services programmes;
          (b) Resolution 1993/45, entitled “Right to freedom of opinion and
          expression”, in which the Commission invited the special rapporteurs to pay
          attention, within the framework of their mandates, to the situation of persons
          detained, subjected to violence, ill-treated or discriminated against for
          having exercised this right.
          (c) Resolution 1993/46, entitled “Integrating the rights of women into
          the human rights mechanisms of the United Nations”, in which the Commission
          requested all its special rapporteurs and working groups to include regularly
          and systematically in their reports available information on human rights
          violations affecting women;
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 4
          (d) Resolution 1993/47, entitled “Human rights and thematic
          procedures”, in which the Commission recommended that Governments that had
          invited any of the thematic special rapporteurs to visit their countries
          consider follow-up visits and encouraged Governments to respond expeditiously
          to requests for information so that the thematic special rapporteurs concerned
          might carry out their mandates effectively. It also encouraged Governments
          encountering problems in the field of human rights to cooperate more closely
          with the Commission through the pertinent thematic procedures, in particular
          by inviting a thematic special rapporteur or working group to visit their
          countries. It further encouraged the thematic special rapporteurs and working
          groups to follow closely the progress made by Governments in their
          investigations carried out within their respective mandates and requested them
          to include in their reports gender-disaggregated data, as well as comments on
          problems of responding and the results of analyses;
          (e) Resolution 1993/48, entitled “Consequences for the enjoyment of
          human rights of acts of violence committed by armed groups that spread terror
          among the population and by drug traffickers”, in which the Commission
          requested the Special Rapporteurs to continue paying particular attention to
          the adverse effect on the enjoyment of human rights of such acts of violence;
          (f) Resolution 1993/64, entitled “Cooperation with representatives of
          United Nations human rights bodies”, in which the Commission urged Governments
          to refrain from all acts of intimidation or reprisal against persons
          cooperating with representatives of United Nations human rights bodies,
          availing themselves of human rights protection procedures established under
          United Nations auspices or providing legal assistance for this purpose, as
          well as those who submit communications under procedures established by human
          rights instruments and relatives of victims of human rights violations. It
          also requested representatives of human rights bodies to continue to take
          urgent steps to help prevent the occurrence of such intimidation and
          reprisals.
          I. MANDATE AND METHODS OF WORK
          S. The Special Rapporteur has followed the principle of continuity in the
          discharge of the mandate conferred on him pursuant to Commission on Human
          Rights resolution 1992/32 and other resolutions of the Commission. Thus, his
          work is characterized by the following main types of activity:
          (a) Seeking and receiving credible and reliable information
          from Governments, the specialized agencies and intergovernmental and
          non-governmental organizations;
          (b) Making urgent appeals to Governments to clarify the situation of
          individuals whose circumstances give grounds to fear that treatment falling
          within the Special Rapporteur's mandate might occur or be occurring;
          (c) Transmitting to Governments information of the sort mentioned
          in (a) above indicating that acts falling within his mandate may have occurred
          or that legal or administrative measures are needed to prevent the occurrence
          of such acts; and
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 5
          (d) Exploring the possibility of visits to States with a view to
          gaining more direct knowledge of cases and situations falling within his
          mandate and identifying measures to prevent the recurrence of such cases and
          to improve the situations.
          6. As far as urgent appeals are concerned, the Special Rapporteur has been
          formally requested by one Government (Turkey, letter of 10 September 1993)
          and informally requested by another to clarify the criteria he uses in
          deciding to make an urgent appeal. In both cases he indicated to the
          respective Governments that, since they were raising an issue of general
          concern he would address the matter in the present report. This would allow
          the Commission on Human Rights to take cognizance of the issue and offer any
          guidance it might deem appropriate. In this connection, the Special
          Rapporteur draws the attention of the Commission to the relevant passage in
          the report of his predecessor to the Commission at its forty-eighth session
          (E/cN.4/1992/17). In paragraph 14, he stated:
          “The urgent appeal procedure is basically different from the
          transmittal of communications about alleged cases of torture. An urgent
          appeal is made whenever the Special Rapporteur receives information that
          a person has been arrested and fear is expressed that that person may be
          subjected to torture. Such fear may be based inter alia on accounts by
          relatives or other visitors of the detainee's physical condition or on
          the fact that the detainee is kept incommunicado, a situation which is
          conducive to torture. An urgent appeal by the Special Rapporteur is of a
          purely humanitarian nature. The Government concerned is merely requested
          to assure the Special Rapporteur that the detained person's physical and
          mental integrity will be guaranteed. Such an appeal, moreover, provides
          the Government concerned with the opportunity to look into the matter and
          to uphold its obligations under international law by instructing the
          detaining authorities to respect the individual's right to physical and
          mental integrity.”
          7. It is clear from this explanation that the essence of the procedure is
          not per se accusatory. It is essentially preventive in nature and purpose.
          The most satisfactory answer the Special Rapporteur can receive from the
          Government in question is one containing evidence that the fear expressed has
          not materialized. Accordingly, the Special Rapporteur does not, indeed must
          not, wait until he has received evidence that torture has taken or is taking
          place before making an urgent appeal. That would undermine the effectiveness
          of this preventive technique. The question can only be whether there are
          reasonable grounds to believe that a person is held under circumstances
          indicating that there is an identifiable risk of torture. That assessment has
          to be made rapidly by the Special Rapporteur and in making it he takes into
          account a number of factors, any one of which may be sufficient, though
          generally more than one will be present. These factors include:
          (a) The previous reliability of the source of the information;
          (b) The internal consistency of the information;
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 6
          (c) The consistency of the information with information on other cases
          from the country in question that has come to the Special Rapporteur's
          attention;
          (d) The existence of authoritative reports of torture practices from
          national sources, such as official commissions of inquiry;
          (e) The findings of other international bodies, such as United Nations
          country rapporteurs and representatives, the Human Rights Committee, the
          Committee against Torture and regional human rights bodies, in particular, the
          European Committee for the Prevention of Torture and Inhuman or Degrading
          Treatment or Punishment;
          (f) The existence of national legislation, such as that permitting
          prolonged incommunicado detention, that can have the effect of facilitating
          torture; and
          (g) The threat of extradition or deportation, directly or indirectly, to
          a State or territory where one or more of the above elements are present.
          8. The above is not intended to be an exhaustive list. Nor will the urgent
          appeals generally identify which factors the Special Rapporteur has borne in
          mind. This is because the Special Rapporteur considers it necessary that he
          bring his judegment to bear on the case at hand and that the principle of
          safeguarding human dignity and the integrity of the person dictates that he
          err on the side of protection of potential victims under his mandate rather
          than on the side of avoiding administrative inconvenience for Governments.
          Further, the more the appeals were to contain formal substantiation for their
          having been sent, the more they would begin to resemble accusations. Such an
          effect would be incompatible with the preventive nature and purpose of the
          urgent appeal procedure.
          9. With regard to the transmittal of information alleging violations of the
          prohibition of treatment within the Special Rapporteur's mandate, the Special
          Rapporteur has continued to send summaries of information giving cause for
          concern to Governments. As a result of the gap between the resignation of
          Mr. Peter Kooijmans and the appointment of his successor, it was only possible
          to begin processing and transmittal of letters containing such information in
          August 1993. Further letters were sent in October/November 1993. In general,
          it was only possible to send one letter to any particular Government,
          regardless of the incidence and quality of the information addressed to the
          Special Rapporteur. This is an unfortunate situation; first, because it is
          desirable for Governments to be in possession of relevant information as
          expeditiously as possible and, second, because when information is transmitted
          later in the year, little time is left for the receipt of a response
          susceptible of being reflected in the Special Rapporteur's report for the year
          in question. This leads to even an initial exchange of correspondence being
          spread across more than one report. This, in turn, makes it difficult for a
          reader to obtain a properly balanced perspective concerning the original
          allegations or to assess the significance of any later governmental response.
          Moreover, much information that arrives after the transmittal of a letter to a
          Government must then wait until the following year before being transmitted to
          that Government. Further, if any response from a Government seems to the
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 7
          Special Rapporteur to warrant elucidation, he is only in a position to seek
          that elucidation within the context of the next letter of transmittal of
          information.
          10. This rigidity flows from the limited resources the Centre is in a
          position to make available to service the Special Rapporteur 's mandate.
          Despite these difficulties, the Special Rapporteur has been able to initiate
          the practice of consulting sources of original allegations in respect of
          official responses to the allegations, especially in cases where the facts
          appear to be contradicted.
          11. The Special Rapporteur believes that it is in the interest of both
          victims and Governments that he be in a position (a) to transmit to
          Governments summaries of all credible and reliable information addressed to
          him alleging cases and practices of torture; (b) to analyse responses from
          Governments; (c) to consult sources of allegations on such responses, as
          appropriate; (d) to pursue the dialogue with Governments when warranted; and
          (e) to draw any conclusions and make any recommendations to Governments that
          such a systematic exchange would indicate. To the extent that the present
          report fails to reflect this ambition, it is, as indicated, the result of
          limited resources. Nevertheless, the Special Rapporteur believes that, unless
          the Commission on Human Rights expresses a different view, he should seek as
          far as possible to work in a manner consistent with the above approach.
          12. Finally, in respect of this aspect of his mandate, the Special Rapporteur
          wishes to draw the Commission's attention to an issue raised by one Government
          (India, letter dated 9 December 1993) which stated that “the mandate of the
          Special Rapporteur should also take into account human rights violations
          perpetrated by terrorism”. The Special Rapporteur considers that the problem
          of terrorism is covered by Commission resolution 1993/48 (see Introduction,
          para. 4 (e) ) , which speaks of the “adverse effect on the enjoyment of human
          rights of persistent acts of violence committed in many countries by armed
          groups . . . that spread terror among the population”
          13. The Special Rapporteur notes that resolution 1993/48, like its
          predecessor resolutions, does not refer to such acts of violence as
          constituting human rights violations. In the opinion of the Special
          Rapporteur, this omission is intentional. He believes that the Commission
          would not wish to dignify the perpetrators of criminal violence by describing
          them as human rights violators or, even less, addressing them as though they
          had the sort of authority that falls within the regime of the international
          legal protection of human rights, Of course, the Special Rapporteur is
          conscious of the fact that international law applicable in armed conflict,
          whether the conflict be of an international or non-international character,
          prohibits torture by any party to the conflict at any time and in any place
          whatsoever. The Special Rapporteur could envisage that his mandate could
          extend to any party to such a conflict. He would welcome guidance by the
          Commission as to whether he should seek to apply his mandate to acts committed
          by parties to an armed conflict. If so, he would appreciate further guidance
          on how he should determine whether such a conflict exists and what entities
          may be appropriately considered as parties to the conflict: should he, for
          example, be guided by the view of the Government of the member State
          concerned? Meanwhile, the Special Rapporteur will continue as appropriate to
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 8
          acknowledge the existence of persistent acts of violence committed by armed
          groups when these are brought to his attention, within the context of acts
          falling under his mandate.
          14. On the basis of the aforementioned, the Special Rapporteur transmitted
          during the period under review 84 urgent appeals to 31 Governments concerning
          roughly 400 individuals (at least 12 known to be women) , as well as several
          groups of persons, with regard to whom fears of torture had been expressed.
          He also sent 42 letters containing about 500 cases (about 30 known to be
          women) or incidents of alleged torture. If the information received contained
          a critical analysis of a more general nature regarding the phenomenon of
          torture, this information was also brought to the attention of the Governments
          concerned. In addition, 20 countries provided the Special Rapporteur with
          replies on about 250 cases submitted during the current year, whereas 17 did
          so with respect to roughly 130 cases submitted in previous years.
          15. As to the matter of visits to States and territories where serious
          allegations of torture arise, no such visits have taken place since the
          Special Rapporteur was appointed. In its resolution 1993/97, the Commission
          on Human Rights urged the Government of Indonesia to invite the Special
          Rapporteur, inter alia , to visit East Timor. On 13 September 1993 the Special
          Rapporteur addressed a letter to the Government of Indonesia drawing its
          attention to this resolution. So far he has received no reply.
          16. Despite the repeated encouragement to Governments expressed by the
          Commission, most recently in resolution 1993/40, “to give serious
          consideration to inviting the Special Rapporteur to visit their countries so
          as to enable him to fulfil his mandate even more effectively”, no Government
          has taken the initiative to invite the Special Rapporteur. Nevertheless, he
          has had contacts with a number of Governments that he believes could result in
          his being invited to undertake visits. The (hopefully positive) results of
          these contacts will be indicated to the Commission in the next report of the
          Special Rapporteur.
          17. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur is aware of the need expressed
          in the Commission and at the World Conference on Human Rights (see following
          paragraph) for cooperation among the United Nations human rights procedures
          and for the avoidance of unnecessary duplication. Accordingly, he will not as
          a rule seek to visit a country in respect of which the United Nations has
          established a country specific mechanism such as a special rapporteur on the
          country, unless a joint visit seems to both to be indicated. As regards
          countries where the mandates of other thematic mechanisms may also be
          affected, he will seek consultation with them, with a view to exploring with
          the Government in question, either jointly or in parallel, the possibility of
          a joint visit. In any event, he will seek to avoid broadly contemporaneous
          visits. Similarly, where the Committee against Torture is considering or has
          recently considered the situation in a country under article 20 of the
          Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or
          Punishment, especially if that consideration involves a visit or a possible
          visit to the country in question, the Special Rapporteur will not also seek a
          visit.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 9
          18. In general, the Special Rapporteur has welcomed the accent placed by the
          Commission on cooperation among the various mechanisms called upon to address
          the problem of torture and analogous grave human rights violations. He has
          noted, in particular, resolution 1993/40, in paragraph 16 of which the
          Commission considered it desirable that the Special Rapporteur should continue
          to have a further exchange of views with the various mechanisms and bodies
          entrusted with the task of combating torture, in particular with a view to
          enhancing further their effectiveness and mutual cooperation; and resolution
          1993/47, in paragraph 9 of which the Commission encouraged the thematic
          special rapporteurs and working groups to continue to cooperate closely with
          relevant treaty bodies and country rapporteurs.
          19. Moreover, the Vienna Declaration and Programme of Action of the World
          Conference on Human Rights states in Part II
          “1. The World Conference on Human Rights recommends increased
          coordination in support of human rights and fundamental freedoms within
          the United Nations system. To this end, the World Conference on Human
          Rights urges all United Nations organs, bodies and the specialized
          agencies whose activities deal with human rights to cooperate in order to
          strengthen, rationalize and streamline their activities, taking into
          account the need to avoid unnecessary duplication. The World Conference
          on Human Rights also recommends to the Secretary-General that high-level
          officials of relevant United Nations bodies and specialized agencies at
          their annual meeting, besides coordinating their activities, also assess
          the impact of their strategies and policies on the enjoyment of all human
          rights.”
          “88. The World Conference on Human Rights recommends that
          the State parties to international human rights instruments, the
          General Assembly and the Economic and Social Council should consider
          studying the existing human rights treaty bodies and the various thematic
          mechanisms and procedures with a view to promoting greater efficiency and
          effectiveness through better coordination of the various bodies,
          mechanisms and procedures, taking into account the need to avoid
          unnecessary duplication and overlapping of their mandates and tasks.”
          20. In this context the Special Rapporteur found extremely valuable the
          formal and informal contacts with other procedures that were afforded by the
          Fourth Preparatory Committee meeting and the World Conference itself. These
          and other informal and formal meetings, such as the one held in December 1993
          with the Working Group on Arbitrary Detention, have permitted him to stay
          abreast of developments in the methods of work of the other procedures,
          especially the thematic ones, with a view not only to avoiding duplication of
          the sort addressed in the previous paragraphs, but also to harmonizing their
          working methods and reporting procedures. The Special Rapporteur considers as
          potentially productive the Commission's request to the Secretary-General, in
          its resolution 1993/47, that he consider the possibility of convening a
          meeting of all the thematic special rapporteurs and the Chairmen of the
          working groups of the Commission in order to enable an exchange of views and
          closer cooperation. Following the acknowledgment by the World Conference that
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 10
          such “procedures and mechanisms should be enabled to harmonize and rationalize
          their work through periodic meetings”, the Special Rapporteur looks forward to
          the holding of such meetings.
          21. Also, pursuant to Commission resolution 1993/40, paragraph 16 (see
          para. 18 above) , the Special Rapporteur held a formal meeting with the Board
          of Trustees of the Voluntary Fund for Victims of Torture. He assured the
          Board that he would continue his predecessor's support for its work, encourage
          contributions to its resources and disseminate, as appropriate, information on
          its work to those that could benefit from the assistance it offers.
          22. The Special Rapporteur was also mindful of Commission resolution 1993/41,
          entitled “Human rights in the administration of justice”, in which it invited
          the Commission on Crime Prevention and Criminal Justice to explore ways and
          means of cooperating with the human rights programme in the field of the
          administration of justice, with special emphasis on the effective
          implementation of norms and standards.
          23. He therefore accepted an invitation to attend the second session of that
          Commission, where he stressed the importance of norms and standards adopted in
          the criminal justice field for his own work, Of particular relevance were the
          Standard Minimum Rules for the Treatment of Prisoners (1955) , the Declaration
          on the Protection of All Persons from Being Subjected to Torture and Other
          Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment (1975) and the Code of
          Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials (1979) . The decision of the Commission
          on Crime Prevention and Criminal Justice to treat the Standard Minimum Rules
          as one of the instruments the implementation of which would be subject to
          immediate review was gratifying to the Special Rapporteur. The Special
          Rapporteur believes that he should be enabled to attend subsequent sessions
          of that Commission.
          II. INFORMATION REVIEWED BY THE SPECIAL RAPPORTEUR
          WITH RESPECT TO VARIOUS COUNTRIES
          Algeria
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          24. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received reports according to which the new
          anti-terrorist act, which entered into force in October 1992, extended the
          period of police detention (during which the prisoner is held incommunicado
          without contact with his family or his lawyer) from 48 hours to 12 days.
          This situation was allegedly creating conditions conducive to torture and
          ill-treatment, which were said to be practised systematically in some
          detention centres. The individual cases described in the following paragraphs
          were transmitted to the Government.
          25. Nadir Hammoudi was allegedly arrested at his home in central Algiers
          on 9 October 1992 by members of the security forces. He was said to have been
          subjected to torture during the 29 days he spent in police custody.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 11
          26. With respect to this case the Government indicated on 15 November 1993
          that following his arrest on 27 October 1992 Nadir Hammoudi had been brought
          before the Government Procurator's Office in Algiers on 7 November 1992 and
          charged under the Act to combat subversion and terrorism. The National Human
          Rights Observation Centre (ONDH) had approached the authorities concerned and
          Mr. Hammoudi himself on a number of occasions in order to obtain accurate
          information on the situation concerning his arrest and custody. ONDH had yet
          to receive a reply. Moreover, neither the parents of the defendant nor his
          lawyers had filed any complaint requesting a judicial investigation or an
          expert medical opinion.
          27. Mohamed Yassine Simozrag was allegedly arrested at his home in Algiers
          on 23 July 1993 and held incommunicado for more than 20 days. His family and
          lawyer were able to visit him in Al-Harrach prison on 18 August and saw that
          he had contusions. He reportedly stated that he had been tortured by the “rag
          method”, which involved tying the victim to a chair and trying to choke him
          with a rag soaked in dirty water and chemicals.
          28. On 15 November 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          Mohamed Yassine Simozrag was arrested on 28 July 1993 in the company of a
          terrorist wanted for his involvement in several attacks. On the expiry of
          the legal period of custody, he had been brought before the Government
          Procurator's Office in Algiers and then had had a detention warrant issued
          against him after being charged in the context of the Act for the repression
          of terrorism and subversion. Two lawyers had been appointed to represent and
          defend Mr. Simozrag, who had received regular visits from them.
          29. Following allegations of ill-treatment of the defendant during his
          custody, ONDH made a number of representations to the legal authorities
          concerned. One of the lawyers, on being contacted by ONDH, stated that no
          request for an expert medical opinion or a judicial investigation of
          ill-treatment during custody had been made; a visit to his client had enabled
          him to establish that the latter had not been physically harmed.
          30. By the same letter of 15 November 1993 the Government indicated that its
          position on the question of torture had always been and continued to be a firm
          and unambiguous condemnation of this odious practice. This position was
          expressed, in particular, through Algeria's accession, without any reservation
          whatever, to the Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or
          Degrading Treatment or Punishment.
          31. Despite being confronted with terrorist activities arising out of
          religious extremism, Algeria had continued its efforts to safeguard democracy
          and protect human rights within the context of internationally recognized
          human rights principles. Temporary restrictions on the exercise of certain
          freedoms had not, therefore, gone beyond the limits expressly laid down by the
          International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, to which Algeria was a
          party. Moreover, abuses of any kind were controlled by machinery which
          provided the persons concerned and those who defended them with every
          opportunity to denounce such acts, which, should they be proved, were treated
          accordingly, with the perpetrators being punished. Allegations which the
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 12
          Special Rapporteur had apparently received on certain aspects of Algerian
          legislation “connected with the practice of torture” were so aberrant that
          there could be no question of Algeria paying the least attention to them.
          Urgent appeals
          32. The Special Rapporteur transmitted an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 16 September 1993 expressing concern about the situation of Ameur Legraldi
          and Fathi Ouerghi, Tunisian nationals alleged to be members of the
          unauthorized Islamic movement “Al-Nahda”. They were reported to have left
          Tunisia in 1992 owing to fear of persecution because of their membership of
          the said movement. Ameur Legraidi had allegedly been condemned in absentia
          to 11 months' imprisonment in Tunisia. The two men reportedly applied for
          political asylum in Algeria, where they were registered as refugees by the
          Office of the United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees (UNHCR) . The
          Office of Stateless Persons and Refugees of the Algerian Ministry of Foreign
          Affairs was said to have granted them a temporary residence permit. On
          13 June 1993 they were arrested in Algiers. Given the reports that seven
          persons of Tunisian nationality had been arrested and tortured by the Tunisian
          authorities after being forcibly repatriated from Algeria in January 1993,
          fears were expressed that the two men might also be subjected to such
          treatment if deported.
          33. On 29 October 1993 the Government replied that these cases could not be
          regarded as situations coming within the terms of reference assigned to the
          Special Rapporteur by the Commission on Human Rights. However, in view of the
          importance Algeria attached to dialogue with experts of the Commission on
          Human Rights, the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that these
          cases had been discussed in detail with the appropriate body, namely, UNHCR.
          It recalled that States had the prerogative of granting refugee status
          to foreigners requesting such status and denied the allegation that
          Ameur Legraldi and Fathi Ouerghi had been issued residence permits by the
          Office of Stateless Persons and Refugees in the Ministry of Foreign Affairs.
          34. The Government also reported that Algeria had at no time failed in its
          duty as a country of reception, which had, moreover, been ranked as a
          constitutional principle; its continuing concern was to respond to genuinely
          humanitarian requests in accordance with the values of humanism and solidarity
          it had always upheld. Confronted with terrorist manifestations of religious
          extremism, Algeria had, since the establishment of the state of emergency,
          reiterated its commitment to the cause of human rights and showed that it was
          determined to base security action on full respect for the provisions of the
          international instruments to which it was a party, particularly those relating
          to the exercise of the right of derogation. All of the security measures
          taken to strengthen the rule of law and consolidate democratic institutions
          were thus in conformity with the international commitments Algeria had
          undertaken in the field of human rights. A similar concern had been shown in
          the humanitarian cases with which Algeria had had to deal and which had all
          been managed in accordance with its age-old attachment to the sacred principle
          of granting asylum to persons seeking protection.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 13
          35. On 18 October 1993 the source reported that Ameur Legraldi and
          Fathi Ouerghi, who had been recognized as refugees in need of protection
          by UNHCR in Algiers, had been handed over to the Tunisian authorities
          on 8 July 1993.
          Observations
          36. The Special Rapporteur appreciates the Government of Algeria's commitment
          to dialogue with experts of the Commission on Human Rights. He notes that the
          Government has not explained why it considers the cases of foreign nationals
          threatened with deportation and eventually deported to a country where they
          risked being tortured might not fall within his terms of reference. In this
          he has merely followed the practice of his predecessor and other thematic
          procedures. Moreover, Algeria, as a party to the Convention against Torture
          and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment, is bound by its
          article 3 to refrain from such deportations. As to the Government's dismissal
          of concerns that legislation authorizing prolonged incommunicado detention can
          facilitate torture, the Special Rapporteur notes that this concern has
          consistently motivated his predecessor and that the Commission on Human Rights
          shares the concern: as recently as 5 March 1993, in its resolution 1993/40,
          in which the Special Rapporteur was appointed, the Commission recalled that
          “incommunicado detention is highly conducive to torture practices” . The
          Special Rapporteur welcomes the Government of Algeria's stated commitment,
          despite the existence of “terrorist manifestations of religious extremism”, to
          maintain respect for human rights, in particular the absolute prohibition of
          torture. He believes that this commitment could be made more effective by
          eschewing resort to prolonged incommunicado detention.
          Angola
          Information transmitted to the Government
          37. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur transmitted to the
          Government the following two cases of torture alleged to have occurred in
          Jthgola.
          38. Charles Mpoti was arrested on 5 October 1990 in Luanda on charges on
          being a member of UNITA and taken to Estrada Catete prison, where he was
          allegedly tortured. Medical reports prepared abroad shortly afterwards stated
          that Mr. Mpoti had a sprained left shoulder with lesions of the circumflex
          nerve that prevented him from raising his arm. It was also found that he
          had major sequelae of burns on the buttocks. He was arrested again on
          14 October 1992 and detained for three weeks in Estrada Catete prison, where
          he was allegedly tortured once more.
          39. Godfrey Absalom Nangoya, a member of the Associacao Civica de Jthgola and
          one of the leaders of its human rights programme, was arrested at his home in
          Luanda on 1 November 1992, together with his wife and children. They were
          taken to a police station, where Mr. Nangoya and his wife were reportedly
          beaten in the presence of their children. As a result, he had a broken tooth
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 14
          and a wound on one arm. His wife and children were released four days later,
          while he was transferred to Estrada Catete prison. One night while he was
          sleeping in his cell, a guard reportedly fired a shot at him and nearly killed
          him.
          Bangladesh
          Information transmitted to the Government
          40. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received reports concerning incidents of torture
          perpetrated by members of the military and paramilitary forces against tribal
          people in the Chittagong Hill Tracts, as well as by the police in other parts
          of the country. According to this information, torture in police custody
          occurred routinely but was rarely reported as the victims feared further
          ill-treatment by the police. It usually involved beating with sticks and
          rifle butts, as well as kicking with boots on sensitive parts of the body.
          41. The incidence of rape in custody was reported to be high but, because of
          the social stigmatization faced by the victim, it usually went unreported.
          The legal requirement that rape had to be reported within 12 hours also made
          it difficult for the victim to file a complaint.
          42. There were also reports about cases of death in custody as a result of
          torture. According to them, whenever a detainee died in police custody, the
          police were obliged to file an “unnatural death case”, which necessitated a
          police inquiry into the death. To avoid this, the police had sometimes
          transferred the bodies of people who had died after torture to hospital,
          putting pressure on medical staff to have them falsely admitted as alive.
          43. The individual cases described in the following paragraphs were
          transmitted to the Government.
          44. Mominuddin Ahmed was arrested by uniformed police officers at his
          residence on 18 August 1992 and taken to the Kotwali police station in
          Rangpur. When his wife visited him two hours later in the police station,
          he could only speak with effort and told her that he had been severely
          kicked in the chest and stomach. He died in Rangpur Medical College Hospital
          on 1 September 1992.
          45. Momma Khatum died of her injuries on 31 August 1992 in the village of
          Bazra Hat, Noahkali district, after a group of police officers reportedly
          subjected her to severe beating. An inquiry is reported to have taken place
          into the incident.
          46. Finally, the Special Rapporteur drew the attention of the Government to
          the case of Nazrul Islam, who was reportedly 12 years old when he was arrested
          in 1980 and convicted of robbery. In December 1992 the High Court allegedly
          found that he had been illegally detained and that for 11 of these 12 years he
          had been held in leg irons.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 15
          Information received from the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          47. On 6 April 1993 the Government provided the Special Rapporteur with
          information on the cases referred to below, which had been communicated to it
          on 12 November 1992.
          48. The incidents which took place in Eheramara, Kushtia district,
          on 25 March 1991 when members of the Range Reserve Police Force allegedly
          arrested five persons and severely beat them. The Government informed the
          Special Rapporteur that following an altercation between some members of the
          public and a group of law enforcement officials who were on duty there, an
          unpleasant incident had taken place at Eheramara on 26 March 1992. One person
          died in the incident owing to gunfire by the armed personnel on duty. A
          committee of inquiry headed by an Additional District Magistrate had been
          established by the Government. On enquiry, 22 persons were found guilty and
          were dismissed from government service.
          49. Milan Kanti Chakma, Upali Chakma, Syamal Kanti Chakma, Dipankar Chakma
          and Bimalendu Chakma, were allegedly subjected to torture in the Koakhali army
          camp on 20 March 1992. The Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          these persons had been summoned to the camp in the context of an inquiry
          relating to extortion of monetary contributions for a terrorist organization,
          putting up posters on behalf of terrorist organizations, purchasing supplies
          for terrorists and illegal possession of firearms. They had been released on
          the same day, after questioning. They had not been subjected to any physical
          or mental torture. The allegations of beatings, application of electric
          shock, infusion of hot water through the nose or hanging from trees, were
          totally false.
          50. Silcham Chakma, Master Kamal Chakma, Barpeda Chakma, Priyalal Chakma,
          Kula Mohan Chakma and Pindu Mohan Chakma, were allegedly subjected to torture
          in the Champatali Camp, in Ghagra zone, on 20 May 1992. The Government
          informed the Special Rapporteur that none of these persons had ever been
          arrested or brought to the Champatali camp in Ghagra zone and that the
          allegations were totally false and fabricated.
          51. Bina Chakma, Mita Khisa, Rakhi Sona Khisa, Kakuna Chakma, Royna Chakma,
          Urbasi Chakma and Tipu Rani Chakma, were allegedly raped on 14 March 1992 by
          members of the Chowdhuri Chara army camp. The Government informed the Special
          Rapporteur that only three women, Rakhi Soma Khisa, Royna Chakma and
          Tipu Rani Chakma could be found in Krishmachara village. The villagers were
          unaware of the existence of the other four women. These three women had
          reported that a mobile patrol visited the area on 14 March 1992 and alleged
          that the members of the patrol beat them. They could not, however,
          substantiate or provide any evidence of such beating. There were no
          allegations of rape.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 16
          Bolivia
          Information received from the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          52. On 9 December 1992 the Government transmitted its reply with
          respect to the alleged torture in April 1992 of Alvaro Garcia Linera,
          Raquel Gutiérrez de Garcia, Victor Ortiz and Macario Tola. According to the
          Government, once the persons accused of terrorism were imprisoned, their
          families went to the prisons together with a commission composed of human
          rights representatives. They later declared that the detainees showed signs
          on their bodies of having been given electric shocks and having been brutally
          tortured, and that they even had holes in their fingernails made by nails. In
          view of such statements, the Ministry of the Interior had convened members of
          the press, human rights representatives, relatives and members of the medical
          profession and urged them to visit the prisons to make impartial eyewitness
          checks. However, the relatives and members of human rights organizations had
          not taken part in the visit.
          53. During the visit, evidence had been found only of burns on the hands of
          Raquel Gutiérrez de Garcia and not on other parts of her body, as stated
          before; the burns were the result of the two suicide attempts she had made
          while in detention; in the first attempt, she had stuck her fingers into the
          electric light socket and, in the second, she had pulled the wires out of the
          electric sprinkler system while it was being cleaned; she had been saved both
          times by the police in charge of her custody; she had confirmed the two
          attempts in her statements to the press and to the judge hearing the case.
          54. With regard to Alvaro Garcia Linera, Victor Ortiz and Macario Tola, the
          visiting commission found no evidence that they had been tortured, as was
          evident from the medical certificates issued by the forensic physician
          appointed by the judiciary. The complaints of torture had been made solely
          for the purpose of media publicity, since it was not possible to prove them
          scientifically or professionally.
          55. The Special Rapporteur transmitted the information provided by the
          Government to the source and asked for its comments. The latter reiterated
          that the four above-mentioned persons had alleged that they had been severely
          tortured. On 21 April 1992 representatives of non-governmental organizations
          had visited Alvaro Garcia Linera, Macario Tola and Victor Ortiz in Chonchocoro
          prison and seen marks on their bodies consistent with their allegations of
          torture. The source also provided a report containing the description made by
          Raquel Gutiérrez de Garcia of the torture to which she had been subjected and
          stating that as a result of it she had attempted to commit suicide.
          Brazil
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          56. On 18 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur transmitted to the Government
          the individual cases described in the following paragraphs.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 17
          57. Osorio Barbosa de Barros, a rural worker, was arrested
          on 8 September 1993 and taken to the police station of Xinguara, state of
          Para, where he was held until 12 September. On that date he was transferred
          by members of the Political and Social Order Police to the police station of
          Curionôpolis, where he was held for one more day before being released.
          During the whole period in which he was detained he was allegedly severely
          beaten, given electric shocks to the head, and subjected to mock hanging and
          mock drowning in a stream.
          58. Ademir Silveira dos Santos and Moisés Silva do Nascimento,
          two 12-year-old street children, were reportedly seriously beaten by
          members of the military police on 13 April 1993 at Praça da Se, Sao Paulo.
          Father Pedro Horacio Caballero, a street educator who witnessed the incident
          and tried to intervene was also beaten. Upon denunciation the state civil and
          military police opened inquiries into the incident.
          59. On 29 November 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          the disciplinary organ of the military police had opened an inquiry on
          14 April 1993, that the complainants had formally recognized the six
          aggressors and that the victims had been examined at the Military Police
          Hospital. The investigation had not yet been completed.
          Bulgaria
          Information transmitted to the Government
          60. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which members of the
          Roma community were frequently subjected to torture or ill-treatment by the
          police, after being taken into custody under accusation of petty criminal
          offences. Several incidents had also been reported of excessive use of force
          by the police, including indiscriminate beating of men, women and children, in
          Roma community neighbourhoods, such as those which had taken place in
          Pazardjik on 28 June 1992 and Novi Pazar on 5 April 1993. The individual
          cases described in the following paragraphs were transmitted to the
          Government.
          61. Anton Stefanov Assenov, aged 14, and his father, Stefan Assenov Ivanov,
          were allegedly kicked and beaten with fists and truncheons at the bus station
          in Shumen, by police officers who claimed that the boy had been caught
          gambling. Subsequently, they were taken to the police station where
          Anton Stefanov was beaten again, handcuffed to a radiator for two hours and
          then released without charges. Two days later he was examined by a doctor who
          reportedly stated that the injuries, bruises on his head, back, chest and
          right armpit, were consistent with the alleged beatings. Complaints were
          filed with the Regional Department of the Ministry of Interior and the
          Varna Military Prosecutor but, so far, without success.
          62. Khristo Nedialkov Khristov was arrested on 24 March 1993 in Stara Zagora
          by a group of police officers who accused him of attempting to steal copper
          wire. Immediately after his arrest he was reportedly beaten with truncheons
          and kicked with heavy boots all over the body. As soon as he was released,
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 18
          the following day, he had to be taken to the district hospital. On 28 March
          his condition deteriorated and he had to undergo a surgical intervention
          during which a part of his lung and a kidney were removed.
          Burundi
          Information transmitted to the Government
          63. In a letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which persons
          arrested for political reasons, especially those suspected of being members of
          the Hutu People's Liberation Party (PALIPEHUTU) , were systematically beaten in
          detention centres run by the Gendarmerie and the Public Security Police.
          Methods of torture included: tying detainees' arms behind their backs so
          tightly that their elbows met and the ropes or cords cut into their arms - as
          a result, some prisoners developed gangrene and others suffered paralysis in
          their arms; beating on the soles of the feet, the back or the hands; being
          made to kneel for long periods, sometimes on bottle tops and pebbles; the use
          of bayonets, piping, truncheons or machetes to inflict injuries.
          64. Reports also indicated that the authorities were not known to have taken
          any steps to prevent torture or to have ordered any independent and impartial
          investigation into allegations of torture. Court judges did not question the
          admissibility of statements made in custody as prosecution evidence, even
          though defendants had claimed to have made statements under duress or to have
          shown signs of injuries consistent with their allegations of torture. The
          1992 Constitution banned torture; however, planned reforms of the Code of
          Penal Procedure reportedly gave little or no priority to safeguarding
          detainees against it. The individual cases described in the following
          paragraphs were dealt with.
          65. Emmanuel Nkunzimana was said to have been severely beaten after his
          arrest in Gitega, in September 1991, by members of the security forces who
          accused him of membership of PALIPEHUTU. He was also reported to have had his
          genitals pierced with a sharp object.
          66. Paul Hakizimana and Evariste Sinyirimana were arrested in August 1990
          after an armed attack on Mabanda military barracks in the southern province of
          Makamba. Paul Hakizimana was reported to have had his legs and arms tied
          tightly behind his back and then been stabbed with bayonets; he was also
          allegedly beaten, subjected to mock execution and had his hair set alight.
          Evariste Sinyirimana allegedly had his genitals pierced with sharp pins and
          suffered temporary paralysis as a result of prolonged tying of his arms above
          the elbow. They were subsequently transferred from Mabanda barracks, first to
          Rumonge prison in the southwestern province of Bururi, and then to Mpimba
          prison, where they were allegedly beaten on arrival.
          67. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur reminded the Government of
          another letter containing allegations which had been transmitted to it on
          21 August 1992 and pointed out that no reply had been received so far.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 19
          Urgent appeals
          68. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 21 April 1993 concerning Joseph Bangurambona, a representative of the
          Front for Democracy in Burundi for the Bujumbura rural region, arrested on
          29 March 1993 by members of the Police Spéciale de Roulage . Fears were
          expressed that he might be subjected to torture.
          Cameroon
          Information transmitted to the Government
          69. On 10 June 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the Government that he had
          received information according to which although the Penal Code proscribed
          torture, rendered inadmissible in court evidence obtained thereby and
          prohibited public servants from using force against any person, the security
          forces continued to inflict severe beatings and other ill-treatment on
          detainees. Methods of torture included beating on the soles of the feet with
          an iron bar or whipping with a reinforced rubber tube. Treatment of prisoners
          in the penitentiary system was poor, especially outside of major urban areas.
          Prisoners were routinely chained in their cells and received inadequate
          medical attention and food. At Tchollire II prison these conditions
          reportedly caused at least 40 deaths among the inmates between 1990
          and 1992.
          70. Sanctions against those responsible were reportedly unknown, although
          government officials maintained that they faced administrative punishments
          which were not made public. Investigations were rare because abused persons
          frequently feared reprisals against themselves and their families if they
          lodged a complaint.
          71. According to the reports, abuses worsened in North West Province
          following the imposition of a two-month-long state of emergency on
          27 October 1992. Several hundred people were reportedly arrested in Bamenda
          and severely beaten at the headquarters of the Brigade mixte mobile (BMM)
          or the Gendarmerie Legion . The individual cases described in the following
          paragraphs were transmitted to the Government.
          72. Ghandi Che Ngawa was reportedly arrested on 9 November at his Bamenda
          office and taken to the BMM, where he was allegedly suspended by his arms and
          legs from an iron bar and severely beaten. Four days later he was transferred
          to the Military Hospital, apparently with a swollen and bruised body and with
          some of his toenails missing. He died a week later from his injuries. Five
          other detainees were also transferred to the Military Hospital at the same
          time as Ghandi Che Ngawa. They had reportedly been beaten daily at the BMM
          and given electric shocks.
          73. Rose Ngo Sona, a nursing mother, was stripped naked and severely beaten
          by a group of soldiers who broke into her house in Bamenda on 28 October in
          order to arrest her brother, Barrister Sendze.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 20
          74. Disturbances also took place in the South West Province in October 1992.
          According to reports, in Kumbha town, Meme division, gangs tolerated by the
          authorities captured a number of people and subjected them to torture. Among
          them were the following.
          75. Ikaabo Christopher Ambaisah was captured on 13 October and taken to the
          District Office where he was allegedly severely beaten with iron rods and
          rough wooden canes before being released the same day.
          76. Ruben Tarh was captured on 22 October and severely beaten with electric
          cables and boards with nails. His captors allegedly melted rubber in fire and
          let the hot fluid drop on his back. They also tied him head down and, in this
          position, beat him with cables before leaving him hanging for one hour.
          77. Thomas Mbah was summoned on 22 October by two plainclothes and three
          uniformed soldiers to Chief Mukete's compound for interrogation. Once there
          he was allegedly given 25 strokes of the cane, burnt with a hot iron rod on in
          several parts of the body and injured with a sword on the left shoulder.
          78. In Bandja village, West Province, the following persons were
          arrested on 5 November 1992 by members of a paramilitary group:
          Emmanuel Kameni Mouaffa, Joseph Fankam, Raphel Lieji, Michel Tankeu,
          Blaise Tseussie, Bernard Ngaoum, Engolbert Wamboyi, Pierre Kameni and
          Michel Tankeu. They were all reportedly beaten with clubs, belts, batons
          and gun butts at the time of arrest.
          79. There were also reports of a series of disturbances in Ndu, North West
          Province, in June 1992, in the course of which a number of citizens, including
          women and children, were severely beaten and subjected to sexual abuse, as in
          the case of Biena Mary Kimbi, publicity secretary of the Donga/Mantung South
          (Ndu) electoral district of the Social Democratic Front. She was arrested by
          six members of the police (gendarmes) on 6 June 1992 and taken to the
          Gendarmerie Brigade headquarters in Ndu, where she was reportedly stripped,
          beaten and sexually assaulted, then held for four days without food or water.
          On about 12 June she was transferred to the Gendarmerie Brigade headquarters
          in the nearby town of Nkambe, where she remained in incommunicado detention,
          denied all contact with family or lawyer. On 19 June she was taken to the
          Gendarmerie Company headquarters in Nkambe, where she and another woman
          detainee were reportedly whipped with belts, after which she was unable to
          walk. She was held in detention for 31 days.
          80. The three cases mentioned below were also communicated to the Government.
          81. Sévérin Tchounkeu, publisher of the French language weekly La nouvelle
          expression and Tsapi, a cartoonist for the Challenge Hebdo weekly were
          arrested by the police in Douala on 2 November 1992. The two were reportedly
          beaten at the time of arrest and Mr. Tchounkeu required hospital attention for
          multiple fractures.
          82. Ange Tokam Guiadem, a student leader, was reportedly arrested
          on S May 1992 by approximately 12 gendarmes at Yaoundé University. They
          allegedly stripped and marched her across campus, punching and kicking her.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 21
          Other students who tried to intervene were beaten off by the gendarmes.
          Ms. Guiadem was taken to a garage where gendarmes allegedly continued to beat
          and taunt her for two days and shaved her head with shards of broken glass.
          She was subsequently moved to the gendarme detention facility where she was
          kept until her release, without charge, on 11 May 1992.
          Information received from the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          83. On 2 March and 12 August 1993 the Government forwarded information on the
          case of Hameni Bieuleu, arrested on 5 November 1992, on behalf of whom the
          Special Rapporteur had made an urgent appeal on 2 December 1992. According to
          the Government, Hameni Bieuleu was, until his release on 28 December 1992,
          detained on the premises of the national gendarmerie in Yaoundé, and later in
          Bamenda, in strict observance of the code on pre-trial proceedings governing
          criminal procedure in Cameroon. Contrary to the reported allegations, he was
          never subjected to any ill-treatment, nor was he deprived of medical care.
          Indeed, the day after his arrest, his family, with Dr. Nouedoui of the
          Yaoundé General Hospital, were authorized at their request to visit him and
          take him the food they wanted (a letter addressed to the Minister of Defence
          by Dr. Nouedoui advising that Hameni Bieuleu should be taken to hospital was
          attached) . After two expert tests in Yaoundé and in Bamenda, earlier clinical
          examinations certifying that Mr. Bieuleu was a diabetic proved false.
          According to the findings published by the National Human Rights and Freedoms
          Committee, after interviews with Mr. Bieuleu during his detention, he had
          never complained of ill-treatment.
          Chad
          Urgent appeals
          84. The Special Rapporteur made four urgent appeals on behalf of the persons
          mentioned in the following paragraphs, with regard to whom fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture while in detention. The
          dates on which the appeals were transmitted appear in brackets at the end of
          the corresponding summaries.
          85. Lieutenant Sérayohim Doyo, non-commissioned Officer Hassane Kabo, staff
          sergeant Ndouba Njadimadje and second-lieutenant Joachim Nodjihorkem Mbailaou,
          all members of the Chadian National Army (ANT) . According to the information
          received, the first three persons were arrested in Doba on 6 February 1993 on
          charges of having had contacts with the Committee of National Renewal for
          Peace and Democracy. They were allegedly beaten and then transferred to the
          military base of Moundou on 15 February. Joachim Nodjihorkem was reported to
          have been arrested on 23 February after having been urgently summoned to
          Moundou by his commander. All four were allegedly being held incommunicado
          (8 April 1993)
          86. Some 220 persons were reportedly arrested on 8 August 1993 in N'Djamena
          in the course of a demonstration during which clashes with the security forces
          were said to have taken place. Most of the demonstrators were members of the
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 22
          OuaddaI community protesting against executions alleged to have been carried
          out in their region of origin, in the eastern part of the country. The
          persons arrested included about 30 young people aged 14 to 17. It was
          reported that some of them were taken to the building of the Military Court,
          at the headquarters of the Gendarmerie, and questioned by members of the
          Judicial Police, and that others were being held incommunicado at unknown
          places of detention. A number of detainees were allegedly wounded during
          the demonstration, members of the Republican Guard having fired upon the
          crowd.
          87. It was also reported that on 10 August members of the Gendarmerie
          arrested three members of the OuaddaI community: Outhman Issa, Prefect of
          Chari-Baguirmi, Imam Ahmat Abaker and Mahamat Zalba, former administrative
          director of the national electricity company. It was alleged that they were
          being held incommunicado. Another member of the OuaddaI community,
          Mahamat Saleh Issakha, was arrested on 12 July 1993 and held in detention for
          48 hours, during which time he was tortured by the so-called arbatachar
          method, in which the arms and the legs of the victim are tied behind the back
          in a very painful position (17 August 1993)
          88. On 13 September 1993 the Government replied that the persons mentioned
          in the appeal of 17 August had indeed been detained and interrogated in
          connection with the unauthorized demonstrations which had taken place on
          8 August 1993. While in detention they had been visited by the president of
          the association of magistrates, as well as by doctors. They had all
          subsequently been released.
          89. Bichara Digui, a member of the Comité national de redressement (CNR);
          Ahmat Digui; Adoum Badour, businessman and Mahamat Koussou, a soldier,
          suspected supporters of Abbas Koty, former minister and leader of the Comité
          national de redressement, were arrested on 22 October 1993 in N'Djamena
          following Abbas Koty's killing. Several members of the armed forces, many of
          whom were believed to be suspected of supporting Abbas Koty, were allegedly
          also arrested between 22 and 25 October; they were believed to be held in
          incommunicado detention at the Gendarmerie headquarters or at the National
          Security Agency (5 November 1993)
          90. With respect to this case the Government indicated, on 11 November 1993,
          that the above-mentioned persons had been arrested by the judicial police
          after a preliminary investigation permitted the conclusion that they were
          preparing a coup d'etat. During their interrogation they had not been
          subjected to any kind of ill-treatment. Adoum Badour had subsequently been
          released.
          91. The following three persons were also reported to have been arrested in
          connection with Abbas Koty's killing: Adoum Asil, Regional Commander of the
          Chadian armed forces in the northern Borkounou Enedi Tibesti region, arrested
          in Faya on 25 October 1993; BraIm Kossi and Hissein Kokap, businessmen,
          arrested on 26 October 1993 in N'Djamena (12 November 1993)
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 23
          Chile
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          92. By letter dated 1 September 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information on 47 cases of torture, reported
          to have occurred between 1991 and 1993. These cases are described in the
          following paragraphs, together with the replies provided by the Government on
          some of them on 2 December 1993.
          93. José Miguel Smnchez Jiménez, arrested on 26 March 1991 in Santiago by the
          Dipolcar carabinieros, was reportedly subjected to suffocation, simultaneous
          slaps on both ears and mock executions, and threatened with the arrest of his
          family.
          94. Alfredo Didino Andrade Miranda, arrested on 29 April 1991 in Santiago by
          the Dipolcar carabinieros, was taken to the 26th Carabinieros station at
          Pudahuel, where he was reported to have been beaten repeatedly in an attempt
          to make him sign a confession. The Government replied that Aridrade Miranda
          was being tried for terrorism. A medical report issued by a doctor of the
          carabinieros hospital stated that he did not bear signs of recent injuries.
          A complaint of torture was filed on 24 July 1991 before the fifth Criminal
          Court in Santiago.
          95. Magdalena de los Angeles Gallardo Bôrquez, arrested on 10 June 1991 by
          the Chilean Police Department in the city of Concepciôn, was allegedly held
          incommunicado for 35 days during which she was reportedly beaten, sexually
          abused and administered drugs.
          96. Juan Sebastimn Linares Ulloa and his brother, arrested at home in
          Santiago on 4 October 1991 by the Dipolcar and Gope carabinieros, were taken
          to the 3rd Carabinieros station where they were reportedly subjected to severe
          beatings and death threats.
          97. Juan Aliste Vega, arrested on 4 October 1991 in Santiago by the
          carabinieros, was taken to the 3rd Carabinieros station where he was
          reportedly beaten and subjected to electric shocks.
          98. Cristian Eugenio Faündez Navarro, arrested on 29 November 1991 in
          Santiago by the Dipolcar and Gope carabinieros, was taken to the
          3rd Carabinieros station where he was reportedly subjected to repeated
          beatings while blindfolded and handcuffed, and to electric shocks.
          99. Paula Andrea Carrasco Barrios was arrested in Santiago on
          14 December 1991 by the carabinieros. Among other forms of torture
          she was reportedly punched and kicked, forced to spend long hours in contorted
          positions, deprived of food and water, deprived of sleep, made to endure mock
          executions and threatened.
          100. Wladimir Jiménez Pinto, arrested in Santiago on 14 December 1991 by the
          Dipolcar carabinieros, was initially taken to the 44th Carabinieros station
          and later transferred to the 3rd Station. He was reportedly beaten, made to
          endure mock executions and deprived of food for several days.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 24
          101. Rodrigo Alejandro Olmedo Olmedo, arrested in Santiago on 14 December 1991
          by the Carrascal carabinieros, was initially taken to the 45th Carabinieros
          station of the “Cerro Navia” and later transferred to the 3rd Station where he
          was reportedly beaten severely, deprived of food for three days, and
          suffocated with a plastic bag over his head.
          102. Bernardo Antonio Acevedo Lagos, arrested by the police on 9 January 1992
          at his home in Santiago, was reportedly kept in handcuffs for four days and
          severely beaten during interrogations. A complaint of torture has apparently
          been lodged with the 3rd Criminal Court. The Government replied that
          Acevedo Lagos was being tried for terrorism. A medical report issued on
          20 January 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that he bore injuries
          caused by blunt instruments during the previous seven to nine days. A formal
          complaint of torture was submitted to the 3rd Criminal Court in Santiago on
          27 January 1992. The proceedings were later dismissed for lack of evidence.
          103. Ramôn Supülveda Alarcôn was arrested by the carabinieros on
          18 January 1992 in the commune of Lo Espejo, Santiago. His right wrist
          was reportedly fractured as the result of beatings which he suffered at the
          time of his arrest. He was taken to the 3rd Carabinieros station where he
          was reportedly beaten once again and deprived of food and sleep for 72 hours.
          104. Waldo Antonio Olivares Fernández, arrested by the police on
          11 February 1992 in Santiago, was taken to police headquarters where he was
          reportedly given electric shocks to force him to confess to his participation
          in various attacks.
          105. Marcela Elisa Nüflez Carrizo, arrested in Santiago on 6 February 1992 by
          members of the plainclothes police department, was reportedly subjected for
          several days to insults, beatings, death threats and mock executions.
          106. Carlos Eduardo Saavedra Saavedra, arrested by the police on
          2 February 1992 in Santiago, was reportedly subjected for four days to
          repeated electric shock sessions and to beatings.
          107. Jaime Enrique Poblete Cortés, arrested by the police on 7 March 1992 in
          the Plaza de Armas, Santiago, was taken to the Central Police Station where he
          was reportedly threatened and beaten repeatedly during interrogation. The
          Government replied that the medical report issued on 11 March 1992 by the
          legal medical service did not indicate any visible sign of injuries.
          108. Ulises Bachler Grandi, arrested on 16 March 1992 in the city of Temuco by
          members of the Civil Commission of Carabinieros. He was initially taken to
          the 2nd Carabinieros station, and the next day he was transferred to the
          offices of the Dipolcar. He was reportedly subjected to severe beatings, to
          mock executions and suffocation with a plastic bag. The Government replied
          that the medical report issued on 18 March 1992 by the Temuco Regional
          Hospital indicated that Mr. Bachler's body bore multiple bruises.
          109. Jaime Antipil Afliflir, arrested on 16 March 1992 at Temuco by the
          carabinieros, was reported to have been taken to the regional hospital with
          gunshot wounds inflicted at the moment of his arrest and injuries resulting
          from beatings. On the following day he was reportedly transferred to the
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 25
          2nd Carabinieros station, where he was subjected to such forms of torture as
          electric shocks, suffocation with a plastic bag, submerging of the head in
          water, mock executions and beatings.
          110. Rafael Escorza Henriquez was arrested by the police at his home in
          Santiago in April 1992. Among other forms of torture he was reportedly beaten
          on the hands and feet, deprived of food and sleep for five days and
          threatened. The Government replied that he had been sentenced to life
          imprisonment for terrorism and that he had never complained of ill-treatment
          by the police.
          111. Luis Alejandro Reyes Reyes, arrested on 16 March 1992 at Temuco during a
          clash with the carabinieros, was transported to the Regional Hospital with
          gunshot wounds, and was reportedly beaten on various parts of the body,
          including his wounded arm. According to the Government, the medical report
          issued on 20 April 1992 by the Temuco Regional Hospital indicated that
          Mr. Reyes had bullet wounds as well as a broken arm.
          112. Maria Cristina San Juan Avila, arrested by the police on 31 March 1992 at
          her home in Santiago, was reportedly kept for two days and two nights
          blindfolded, deprived of food and sleep and beaten. The Government replied
          that she had been sentenced to life imprisonment for terrorism and that she
          had never complained of ill-treatment by the police.
          113. Victor Gonzalez Gonzalez, arrested by the police on 6 March 1992 in the
          Plaza Italia, Santiago, was taken to the General Mackenna central police
          station, where he was reportedly subjected to a series of interrogations
          during which he was beaten, threatened with harm to his wife and given
          electric shocks. The Government replied that the medical report issued on
          9 March 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that there were no visible
          signs of injuries.
          114. Axel Osorio Rivera, arrested in Santiago on 11 June 1992 by the
          carabinieros, was taken to the 3rd Carabinieros station, where he is reported
          to have been continually beaten and deprived of food and sleep for five days.
          The Government replied that the medical report issued on 12 June 1992 by the
          legal medical service indicated that there were no visible signs of injuries.
          115. Vicente Vega Moreno, arrested in Santiago on 11 June 1992, together with
          Axel Osorio Rivera, was taken to the 36th Carabinieros station where he was
          reportedly punched many times and threatened with his own death and that of
          his family. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          15 June 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that this person bore no
          visible signs of injuries.
          116. Andrés Eduardo Castro Caracciolo, arrested by the carabinieros on
          14 June 1992 at his home in the commune of La Florida, Santiago, was taken to
          the 3rd Carabinieros station, where it is reported that he was repeatedly
          threatened, beaten and deprived of food. According to the Government, the
          medical report issued on 16 June 1992 by the legal medical service indicated
          that this person bore no visible signs of injuries.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 26
          117. Alex Zuna Espinoza was arrested on 18 June 1992 by soldiers of the
          “Huamachuco” 24th Infantry Regiment - he was doing his military service in
          Arica. While under interrogation as to his membership of a subversive group
          he was reportedly beaten with a chair, kicked on all parts of his body and
          threatened with death.
          118. Alejandro Rodriguez Escobar, arrested by the carabinieros on 1 July 1992
          in a street in Santiago, reportedly received several bullet wounds at the
          moment of his arrest. He was taken to the 3rd Carabinieros station in the
          Gran Avenida, where it is reported that he was repeatedly beaten and deprived
          of food and sleep. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          2 July 1992 indicated that Mr. Rodriguez had serious injuries consistent with
          having been arrested and shot at.
          119. Victor Hernmn Torres Oteiza, arrested on 11 August 1992 by members of the
          Assaults Department in La Victoria, Santiago, was taken to General Mackenna
          police headquarters, where he was reportedly beaten and subjected to electric
          shocks. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          12 August 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that this person
          bore no visible signs of injuries.
          120. Andrés JordIn Farifla, arrested on 3 September 1992 in Santiago by the
          carabinieros, was taken to the 12th Carabinieros station in the Gran Avenida,
          where he is reported to have been repeatedly beaten and deprived of food for
          five days running. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          8 September 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that Mr. JordIn had
          slight injuries caused by blunt instruments.
          121. Jorge Antonio Espinola Robles, arrested by the police at the home of a
          relative in Santiago on 15 September 1992, was taken to the police station,
          where he was struck on the ears and elsewhere, suspended in the air and
          subjected to a mock execution. According to the Government, the medical
          report issued on 9 March 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that
          Mr. Espinola had bullet wounds in his right arm.
          122. Wilson Enrique Rojas Mercado, arrested in Santiago on 15 September 1992
          by the carabinieros, was taken to the carabinieros stations of La Castrina and
          San Gregorio, where he was reportedly beaten, threatened, subjected to
          electric shocks and to cigarette burns on his arms, chest and back. According
          to the Government, the medical report issued on 17 September 1992 by the legal
          medical service indicated that Mr. Rojas had injuries likely to have been
          caused by a blunt instrument.
          123. Alejandro Rodriguez Escobar, was arrested on 1 July 1992 in a street in
          Santiago by the carabinieros, who reportedly shot him in the right arm and the
          left foot. In spite of his wounds, he was reported to have been severely
          beaten during interrogation.
          124. Carlos Alberto Silva Duncan, arrested by the police on 6 March 1992 in
          Santiago, was taken to General Mackenna police headquarters, where he was held
          until 16 March. He was reportedly subjected to such forms of torture as
          electric shocks, beatings inflicted on various parts of his body and threats.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 27
          According to the Government, the medical report issued on 9 March 1992 by the
          legal medical service indicated that this person bore no visible signs of
          injuries.
          125. Pablo Hernmn Morales Fuhrimann, arrested by the carabinieros
          on 8 October 1992 in the Plaza de Italia district of Santiago, was taken to
          the 3rd Carabinieros station, where he was reportedly beaten and given
          electric shocks. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          9 October 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that this person bore no
          visible signs of injuries.
          126. Rodolfo Retamales Leiva, arrested by the carabinieros in Santiago
          on 12 October 1992, was taken to the 3rd Carabinieros station, where he was
          reportedly beaten, threatened, deprived of sleep and given electric shocks.
          According to the Government, the medical report issued on 13 October 1992 by
          the legal medical service indicated that this person bore no visible signs of
          injuries.
          127. Danielo Eduardo Macaya Cocio, arrested by the police on 9 November 1992
          in the commune of Renca, Santiago, was taken to the Southern police station,
          where he is reported to have been severely beaten. According to the
          Government, the medical report issued by the Barros Luco hospital indicated
          that this person bore no visible signs of injuries.
          128. Jorge Mauricio Mateluna Rojas, arrested on 9 November 1992 in Costanera
          Street, Santiago, was taken to the Southern police station, where he was
          reportedly subjected to such forms of torture as beatings, electric shocks,
          simultaneous slaps to both ears with the palms of the hands and submersion of
          the head in water. According to the Government, the medical report issued by
          the Barros Luco Hospital indicated that this person bore no visible signs of
          injuries.
          129. Ramôn Escobar Diaz, arrested on 16 July 1992 during a clash with the
          carabinieros in Santiago, was taken to the 3rd Carabinieros station where he
          was reported to have been severely beaten, in particular on the hands,
          deprived of food for three days and sleep for five days, and threatened with
          the rape of his companion. According to the Government, the medical report
          issued on 25 August 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that
          Mr. Escobar had injuries caused by blunt instruments.
          130. Eduardo Alfonso Gonzalez Castro, arrested by the police on 20 August 1992
          in the commune of Lo Espejo, Santiago, was taken to police headquarters, where
          he was reportedly beaten, given electric shocks and deprived of food and water
          for four days. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          25 August 1992 by the legal medical service indicated that this person bore no
          visible signs of injuries.
          131. Manuel Osvaldo Martinez Garcés, arrested by the carabinieros
          on 16 July 1992 on a public thoroughfare in Santiago, was taken successively
          to two police stations and was reportedly subjected to repeated beatings and
          threats.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 28
          132. Esteban Huiniguir Reyes, arrested by the police on 13 October 1992 in the
          commune of Lo Prado, Santiago, was taken to the premises of the homicide
          brigade of the commune of Providencia, where he was reportedly submitted to
          several electric shock sessions. According to the Government, the medical
          report issued on 15 October 1993 by the legal medical service indicated that
          this person bore no visible signs of injuries.
          133. Manuel Francisco Saavedra Rodriguez, arrested by officials of the Police
          Department on 12 November 1992 at his home in Santiago, was taken to the
          police station at the intersection of Gran Avenida and Departamental, where he
          was reportedly stripped and beaten all over with blunt objects. According to
          the Government, the medical report issued by the Barros Luco Hospital
          indicated that Mr. Saavedra had bruises on the face, and a broken nose.
          134. Hector Navarro Salinas, arrested by members of the Police Department
          on 8 January 1993 in a street in Santiago, was taken to the Southern police
          station, where he was reportedly subjected to repeated beatings and electric
          shocks. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          13 January 1993 by the legal medical service indicated that Mr. Navarro had
          slight injuries caused by blunt instruments.
          135. José Luis Galarce Gallardo, arrested on 19 January 1993 by officials of
          the Police Department at his home in the settlement of La Victoria, Santiago,
          was taken to the police station at the intersection of Macul and Los Alerces,
          where he was reportedly subjected to beatings and electric shocks. According
          to the Government, the medical report issued on 21 January 1993 by the legal
          medical service indicated that this person bore no visible signs of injuries.
          136. Daniel Jthtonio Torres Vicencio, arrested by the police on 19 January 1993
          in Santiago, was taken to the police station at the intersection of Macul and
          Los Alerces, where he was reportedly beaten and subjected to electric shocks.
          According to the Government, the medical report issued on 21 January 1993 by
          the legal medical service indicated that this person bore no visible signs of
          injuries.
          137. José Mauricio Saldias Gômez, arrested by members of the 1st Station of
          the Assaults Department on 19 January 1993 at his home in Santiago, was
          reportedly submitted to simultaneous beating and electric shocks. According
          to the Government, the medical report issued on 21 January 1993 by the legal
          medical service indicated that this person bore no visible signs of injuries.
          138. Fernando Gonzalez Olivares, arrested by the police in a street in
          Santiago on 8 January 1993, was reportedly subjected to such torture as
          beating and electric shocks. According to the Government, the medical report
          issued on 13 January 1993 by the legal medical service indicated that
          Mr. Gonzalez had an injury caused by a sharp instrument.
          139. Juana Enriqueta Baeza Rocha, arrested by the police in Santiago
          on 25 March 1993, was taken to a police station in San Miguel, where it was
          reported that she was repeatedly beaten and threatened with harm to her
          family. According to the Government, the medical report issued on
          27 March 1993 by the legal medical service indicated that this person bore no
          visible signs of injuries.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 29
          Information transmitted by the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          140. By the above-mentioned letter of 2 December 1993 the Government also
          replied to the cases referred to in the following paragraphs, which had been
          transmitted to it on 21 August 1992.
          141. Admn Eloy Pacheco Pinto was reportedly arrested in 1991 and taken to the
          3rd police station in Santiago. According to the Government, he was charged
          under Law No. 12.927 on the Security of the State and sentenced to
          imprisonment. During the proceedings he never complained of having been
          tortured. A medical report issued by a doctor of the Carabinieros hospital
          stated that Pacheco Pinto did not bear signs of recent injuries.
          142. Nelson Ernesto Ruz Aguilera, Alfredo Heriberto Marchant Figueroa and
          Francisco Javier Diaz Trujillo were arrested in May 1991 and taken to the
          3rd police station. The Government replied that they were being tried under
          the Arms Control Law.
          143. Ana Maria Sepülveda Sanhueza was arrested in March 1992 and taken to the
          Central Investigations Barracks. The Government replied that she was being
          tried for terrorism. She had never complained before the court of having been
          tortured. A medical report issued on 11 March 1993 by the legal medical
          service indicated that there were no visible signs of injuries.
          144. Alicia Lira Matus was arrested in November 1991 while taking part in a
          peaceful demonstration. According to the Government, a complaint for torture
          was lodged with the 5th Criminal Court in Santiago. The case was, however,
          dismissed on 1 December 1992 for lack of evidence.
          145. With respect to the cases of Bernarda Eugenia Valenzuela Montecinos,
          Juan Carlos Chavez Pilquil, Jorge Alf redo de la Fuente Llanos,
          Mario Valenzuela Martinez, Roberto Antonio Morales Pinochet,
          Nélida Molina Morgado, Lorena Reyes Jthderson, José Jthtonio Sabat Méndez,
          Francisco Olea Lagos, CristiIn CIrdenas Jofré, Mirentchu Vivanco Figueroa,
          Jthtonio Lenin Sanchez Pardo, José CristiIn Arriagada Melo and Jorge Antonio
          Concha Meza, the Government replied that no formal complaints had been lodged
          with the judicial authorities and, therefore, no investigation into the
          veracity of the allegations had been carried out.
          China
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received thereon
          146. On 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur transmitted to the Government of
          China a letter containing a summary of allegations received with regard to the
          practice of torture in the country, as well as a number of individual cases.
          In addition, the Special Rapporteur made four urgent appeals on behalf of
          persons who, according to the information received, were at risk of being
          tortured. The Government sent replies with respect to some of them.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 30
          (a) Information regarding the practice of torture in general
          147. According to the information received, although torture is prohibited by
          law in China, police and other State personnel continue to use it to extract
          confessions or to intimidate or punish prisoners. Torture often occurs during
          initial interrogation, immediately after arrest, when police officers try to
          force suspects to give information about themselves or others, or to admit
          alleged offences. Torture may also continue throughout the period of
          detention without trial, which can last for weeks or months before a detainee
          is either prosecuted and tried, or released without charge or given a term of
          administrative detention.
          148. According to the information received, torture and ill-treatment are also
          common in prisons and labour camps where prisoners are transferred after being
          tried and sentenced by a court or after being sentenced to a term of
          administrative detention without the benefit of a trial. In penal
          institutions, ill-treatment often occurs when prisoners infringe regulations
          or disobey orders. Both common criminal prisoners and persons detained for
          political reasons have, reportedly, been subjected to torture. However, the
          majority of victims seem to come from the less educated or less privileged
          classes.
          149. The most common methods of torture reportedly include beatings, assaults
          with electric batons or stun guns, the use of handcuffs and shackles in a way
          intended to inflict pain, suspension by the arms in contorted positions, being
          made to adopt painful or exhausting physical postures, deprivation of sleep or
          food, exposure to cold or heat, and prolonged solitary confinement beyond the
          15 day period allowed by the Chinese regulations as a punishment. It is
          allegedly common practice for prisoners sentenced to death to wear handcuffs
          and/or leg irons from the time they are sentenced to death until they are
          executed, even if it is a period of several months.
          150. Reports were also received of prisoners becoming ill in jail, frequently
          as a consequence of the lack of proper sanitation and hygiene, and poor
          nutrition, who were denied proper medical treatment.
          151. According to the information received, Chinese law does not provide basic
          safeguards to protect prisoners against torture. The law only guarantees
          access to a lawyer in cases where detainees are prosecuted under the criminal
          law. Even in such cases, there is no provision in law for access to a lawyer
          or a judicial authority during pre-trial detention and access to a lawyer is
          only guaranteed once the procedure for trial has started. In these
          circumstances it is almost impossible for detainees to make complaints about
          torture. The legislation includes regulations which permit administrative
          detention without charge or trial and, therefore, without any access to a
          lawyer or a judicial authority, for a period of up to four years. Access for
          the family is usually only granted after a prisoner has been tried and
          sentenced or “assigned” a term of administrative detention. Furthermore,
          family visits are considered a privilege rather than a right and can therefore
          be denied to prisoners.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 31
          152. Although the Criminal Procedure Law stipulates that a confession alone is
          insufficient evidence to find a person guilty, in practice a confession is
          often found sufficient when the other evidence of guilt is inadequate. It was
          also reported that the courts often ignore the allegations of torture made by
          detainees during the trials.
          153. The investigation of torture allegations is reportedly inadequate and few
          investigations take place. The investigations are not public and the findings
          are not subject to public scrutiny. Perpetrators often receive only
          administrative sanctions, such as a transfer. If they are prosecuted, the
          punishments are often light. Many investigations are in fact dropped without
          the alleged perpetrators being prosecuted.
          (b) Individual cases transmitted to the Government
          154. The 34 cases referred to in the following paragraphs were also
          transmitted to the Government, which replied concerning them on
          22 November 1993.
          155. An Fuxing, formerly a cadre at the Jilin Chemical Industry Corporation,
          in the Liaoning Province, was arrested in June 1989 on political charges and
          sentenced to five years' imprisonment. It was alleged that during his stay at
          the No. 1 Squadron of the Training Brigade, a part of the Lingyuan No. 2
          Labour-Reform Detachment of Liaoning Province, he was repeatedly beaten. He
          was also reportedly kept in solitary confinement in a tiny dark cell where he
          was stripped naked, held down on the floor and repeatedly given shocks with
          high voltage electric batons on various parts of his body. As a result, he
          allegedly fell into a state of shock and had to be taken to hospital, but as
          soon as he came back he was tortured again with electric batons. According to
          the Government, An Fuxing, was sentenced in March 1991 by the Jilin Municipal
          People's Intermediate Court to five years' imprisonment for involvement in
          illegal activities injurious to State security. He is now serving sentence at
          the Lingyuan No. 2 prison in Liaoning. He has been in consistently good
          health and has never stayed in hospital.
          156. Li Jie, a prisoner from Jilin province also held at the Lingyuan No. 2
          labour-reform detachment, was reportedly stripped naked, held down on the
          floor and tortured with 50,000 volt electric batons on several parts of his
          body after trying to stage a one-day hunger strike on 4 June 1991. According
          to the Government, Li Jie was sentenced in February 1992 by the Changchun
          Municipal People's Intermediate Court to five years' imprisonment for
          involvement in illegal activities injurious to State security. He is now
          serving sentence at the Lingyuan No. 2 prison. According to investigations,
          he has never been subjected to beatings or verbal abuse.
          157. Zhang Ming, a prisoner at the Lingyuan No. 2 labour reform detachment,
          Liaoning province, was reportedly beaten and kicked for writing a poem on the
          wall on 4 February 1992. On 4 April 1992, the Brigade commander reportedly
          summoned him to his office and assaulted him by striking him with an electric
          baton on the chest, back and neck. According to the Government, Zhang Ming
          was sentenced to prison in 1991 by the Beijing Municipal People's Intermediate
          Court for involvement in illegal activities injurious to State security,
          served his sentence in Lingyuan No. 2 prison and was released on 25 June 1992
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 32
          when he completed it. He did not, during his sentence, “compose poems on the
          prison walls”, and there is no question of his having been savagely beaten for
          this or any other reason.
          158. In addition to the above-mentioned, the following prisoners at the
          Lingyuan labour reform detachment, Liaoning province, were also reported to
          have been subjected to torture, including frequent beatings:
          (a) Chi Mengzhu, a senior high school graduate from Jilin city,
          arrested in May 1990 for printing and distributing leaflets and sentenced
          to 10 years' imprisonment. According to the Government, Chi Mengzhu was
          sentenced in June 1990 by the Jilin Municipal People's Intermediate Court
          to 10 years' imprisonment for involvement in illegal activities injurious to
          State security. He has never been subjected to beatings, verbal abuse or
          corporal punishment.
          (b) Li Dejun, formerly a teacher in Benxi county, Liaoning province,
          sentenced to three years' imprisonment on political charges. According to the
          Government, Li Dejun was sentenced in August 1989 by the Benxi Municipal
          People's Intermediate Court to three years' imprisonment for involvement in
          illegal activities injurious to State security. He was never subjected to
          beatings, verbal abuse or corporal punishment during his sentence.
          (c) Si Wei, a senior high school graduate from Tonghua city,
          Jilin, arrested in June 1989 for distributing leaflets and sentenced to
          three years' imprisonment. According to the Government, Si Wei was sentenced
          in November 1990 by the Tonghua Municipal People's Intermediate Court to
          four years' imprisonment for involvement in illegal activities injurious to
          State security and is now serving his sentence in Lingyuan No. 2 prison. He
          is in good health and has never suffered beatings, verbal abuse or corporal
          punishment.
          (d) Tian Xiaoming, a college graduate from Dandong city, sentenced to
          seven years' imprisonment on political charges. According to the Government,
          Tian Xiaoming was sentenced in December 1989 by the Dandong Municipal People's
          Intermediate Court for involvement in illegal activities injurious to State
          security. He is in good health and has never undergone beatings, verbal abuse
          or corporal punishment.
          (e) Liang Liwei, formerly an assistant engineer at Changchun No. 1 car
          factory, arrested on 10 June 1989, sentenced to three years' imprisonment
          and transferred to Lingyuan in April 1991. According to the Government,
          Liang Liwei was sentenced in November 1990 by the Changchun Municipal People's
          Intermediate Court to a term of imprisonment for involvement in illegal
          activities injurious to State security, and served his sentence at
          Lingyuan No. 2 prison. When his term was up, on 10 June 1992, he was
          released. He has never undergone beatings, verbal abuse or corporal
          punishment.
          (f) Chen Zhuman, a farmer from Putian county, Fujian province, was
          arrested on 14 December 1991, accused of “illegally” joining a religious group
          and taken to the Putian county detention centre. According to the reports,
          he was beaten and hung upside down in a window frame with a mobile torture
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 33
          device, and left hanging like this for a long time. In August 1992 he was
          transferred to another prison in Quanzhou city where he is said to have been
          subjected to frequent beatings as a result of which he now suffers from
          hearing impairment and his hands shake constantly. According to the
          Government, Chen Zhuman was investigated as the law prescribes in
          December 1991 for involvement in illegal activities and assigned in 1992 to
          three years' re-education through labour. He has never undergone beatings,
          verbal abuse or corporal punishment.
          (g) Fan Xueyan, aged 84, former bishop of Baoding, Hebei province, was
          arrested in November 1990 and remained missing until he died in April 1992.
          On the night of 16 April 1992 his body was reportedly delivered to his family
          by Public Security officers who did not give any explanation as to the cause
          of his death. The only official statement was made by a spokesman for the
          official Chinese Catholic Patriotic Association who explained that he had died
          of pneumonia. However, photographs of his body showed a large pinkish-purple
          mark on the side of his face and marks of apparent injuries on his legs.
          (h) Khangsa Gyaltsen, a trader from Thentho Xiang, Zogang Dzong, was
          arrested on 7 July 1989 for having participated in a demonstration. He was
          detained in Chamdo where he allegedly underwent severe torture and was kept
          in solitary confinement. On 7 December 1990 he was transferred to
          Reform-through-Labour Unit No. 2 and is reportedly in very poor health.
          According to the Government, the investigation of Khangsa Gyaltsen's
          circumstances is pending.
          (i) Laba Dunzhu (Lawa Dondrup or Lhapka Dondrup) was sentenced in 1989
          to two-and-a-half years' imprisonment and sent to Gutsa detention centre in
          Lhasa. He reportedly was subjected to several kinds of torture, such as being
          hung from his arms which were chained behind his back and beaten on his back
          and abdomen while suspended. In winter, when it was very cold, he is said to
          have been made to lie down on the ground completely naked for one to two
          hours. He is reported to have suffered many injuries as a result of the
          torture, including a ruptured spleen, and to have become severely ill.
          He died in November 1991 at the People's Hospital in Lhasa.
          (j) Li Lin, a worker from Hengyang, and his brother Li Zhi, were
          arrested in Hengyang, Hunan province, in 1991. They were first held for a
          few days at the Baishazhou investigation centre and then transferred to the
          Wanjiawan detention centre in Hengyang. According to the reports, they were
          beaten on several occasions during interrogation by being punched with fists
          and prodded repeatedly with an electric baton. They were released after
          five months. According to the Government, Li Lin and Li Zhi were arrested
          in Hengyang, Hunan, in 1991; they were released five months later, and
          subsequently left the country. While in captivity they were not severely
          beaten.
          (k) Lobsang Tsondrue, a prisoner at Drapchi prison in Lhasa, was
          allegedly severely beaten and put in solitary confinement after a protest
          which took place in the prison in April 1991. According to the Government,
          Lobsang Tsondrue, sentenced by the Lhasa Municipal People's Intermediate Court
          to six years' imprisonment for involvement in illegal separatist activities,
          was sentenced by the prison, in accordance with the law, to a short period
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 34
          of self-examination in isolation for having seriously breached prison
          regulations, but has never undergone beatings, verbal abuse or corporal
          punishment.
          (1) Lu Decheng, a worker for the Liuyang branch of the Hunan provincial
          bus company, was convicted of “counter-revolutionary” offences in August 1989
          and sentenced to 16 years' imprisonment. He reportedly was subjected to
          severe ill-treatment from the time of his arrest. Following his trial he was
          transferred to the Hunan Provincial No. 3 Prison at Lingling, where he was
          reportedly kept in solitary confinement in particularly harsh conditions for a
          period of six months. According to the Government, Lu Decheng was sentenced
          by the Beijing Municipal People's Intermediate Court to 16 years' imprisonment
          for involvement in illegal activities injurious to the strengthening of the
          State and is being held in Hunan Province No. 2 prison. He has never
          undergone beatings, verbal abuse or corporal punishment.
          (m) Ma Zhiqiang, a worker from Shanghai, was arrested on 15 June 1989
          for attempting to form an independent trade union and taken to the Nanshiqu
          detention centre (Kanshousuo) where he was repeatedly beaten and kept
          handcuffed with his arms behind his back with tight manacles which caused his
          hands to swell. According to the Government, Ma Zhiqiang was sentenced by the
          Shanghai Municipal People's Intermediate Court to five years' imprisonment
          for involvement in illegal activities injurious to State security. He is
          currently serving sentence in Shanghai municipal prison. He has never
          undergone beatings, verbal abuse or corporal punishment.
          (n) Ngawang Yankyi, a nun from Tsamkhung nunnery in Lhasa, was arrested
          on 21 August for taking part in a slogan-shouting demonstration and taken to
          Drapchi Central Prison in Lhasa. She was said to have been severely
          ill-treated and tortured and had to be taken to the Lhasa people's hospital.
          According to the Government, the investigation of Ngawang Yankyi's
          circumstances is pending.
          (o) Ning Wang and Wenhua Zhu, prisoners at Tianjin No. 1 prison,
          Tianjin. Since 1989 they are reported to have been frequently beaten, given
          shocks with electric batons, restrained in tight punishment handcuffs and kept
          for long periods in solitary confinement. At the time of their detention
          Ning Wang served as chairman of the Tianjin Workers Autonomous Federation and
          Wenhua Zhu was a member of the Standing Committee of the same organization.
          According to the Government, Wang Ning was sentenced by the Tianlü Municipal
          People's Intermediate Court to eight years' imprisonment for involvement in
          illegal activities injurious to State security; Zhu Wenhua, to five years'
          imprisonment. Both are currently interned in Tianlü municipal prison.
          Neither in prison nor during the investigations has either undergone any kind
          of corporal punishment, beatings or abuse.
          (p) Sin Jin, a journalist and former head of the Shanxi bureau of the
          Hainan Economic Newspaper, was taken into police custody in Hai Kou, on
          Hainan island, in July 1989. He was subsequently transferred to other
          detention centres, among them the Taiyuan city Public Security Bureau, where
          he is reported to have been severely beaten and put in irons weighing more
          than 50 kilograms, causing him temporary paralysis. According to the
          Government, the investigation of Jin Sin's circumstances is pending.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 35
          (q) Tang Boqiao, a student leader in Changsa during the 1989 protests,
          was held in six different detention centres and prisons in Hunan province
          following his arrest in July 1989. He was allegedly subjected to frequent,
          severe beatings from his cell-mates at the instigation of jail officials, as
          well as being struck with electric batons during his stay at Changsha No. 1
          detention centre. While in Longxi prison, he was reportedly beaten, chained
          hand and foot and confined in a cold, damp and tiny cell. According to the
          Government, Tang Boqiao is now outside the country. During his internment he
          was never subjected to beatings, verbal abuse or corporal punishment.
          (r) Tashi (Lhundup Kalden), a monk at Gaden monastery in Gyama Ziang,
          Maldrogunkar, Tibet, was arrested on 5 March 1988. At the time of the arrest
          he was allegedly stripped and flogged and hit with an iron bar over the head,
          which rendered him unconscious. He was reportedly kept shackled hand and foot
          for a 10-month period. He is now allegedly confined to his hospital bed and
          suffers from periodic blindness and deafness and has difficulty in standing.
          According to the Government, Tashi was sentenced by the Lhasa Municipal
          People's Intermediate Court to nine years and six months' imprisonment for
          involvement in illegal separatist activities. He served sentence at the
          Tibet Autonomous Region prison, but then, because he contracted a disease of
          the cerebral blood vessels, he was released on bail for medical treatment on
          31 March 1993. According to investigations, during his period of imprisonment
          he never underwent beatings, verbal abuse or corporal punishment.
          (s) Tsechok, a monk, was detained in Lhasa in 1989 and taken to the
          police headquarters where he was allegedly beaten with a cattle prod, sticks
          and rifle butts and tied up to the ceiling during an entire night. He was
          later transferred to Gutsa detention centre, where he was reportedly kept on
          an iron chair with his hands chained to the chair and his feet to a cement
          pillar for eight days. Subsequently he was allegedly hit with a stick with a
          triangular section, which left a two-inch-long scar on his head. According to
          the Government, the investigation of Tsechok's circumstances is pending.
          (t) Wang Xizhe, detained at Guangdong Provincial No. 1 prison in
          Huaiji county, is alleged to be held in solitary confinement since 1988. In
          1990 he reportedly went on hunger strike and was force-fed with a bamboo stick
          through which food was pushed down his throat. In 1991 his books and personal
          belongings were taken away for several months. He is said to suffer from
          depression and deteriorating health. According to the Government, Wang Xizhi
          was released on parole on 3 February 1993. He was in good health while in
          prison; considering his own expressed desire for quiet surroundings in which
          to read, the prison authorities arranged for him to occupy a comparatively
          roomy cell by himself, but he did normal recreational and sporting activities
          with the other convicts.
          (u) Xie Baoquan, prisoner at Mian county detention centre (Kanshousuo)
          Shaanxi province, was punished in the winter of 1989-1990 for involvement in a
          fight. He and another man were allegedly handcuffed back to back and tied
          with a rope, which the other prisoners had to pull as fast as they could,
          dragging along the two men tied up. This treatment, called “the old ox
          ploughing the land”, left Xie Baoquan with a massive wound on his back which
          took several months to heal. According to the Government, the investigation
          of Xie Baoquan's circumstances is pending.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 36
          (v) Xu Wenli is serving a sentence of 15 years' imprisonment at
          Beijing No. 1 prison. He is alleged to have spent 11 years of his sentence in
          solitary confinement and to have at times been subjected to punishments. In
          1986 he was allegedly confined in a windowless cell opening through a trap
          door in the ceiling, with reduced food rations and no visits, mail or reading
          matter. According to the reports, official sources have confirmed in recent
          years that he was still in solitary confinement. According to the Government,
          Xu Wenli was released on parole on 26 May 1993. During his internment in
          Beijing No. 1 prison the prison authorities arranged for him, at his own
          request, to occupy a comparatively roomy cell so that he could study more
          easily. He did normal recreational and sporting activities with the other
          convicts. There is an essential distinction between this and solitary
          confinement.
          (w) Yao Guisheng, a worker in Changsha, was arrested in Zhuzhou after
          June 1989 and sentenced to 15 years' imprisonment. During his stay at
          Hunan Provincial No. 6 prison in Longxi he is reported to have become mentally
          ill as a result of repeated ill-treatment. He was periodically put in
          solitary confinement, frequently beaten and made to wear shackles. According
          to the Government, while in prison Yao Guisheng was given 10 days' confinement
          as punishment for fighting, brawling and serious breaches of the prison
          regulations, but he has never undergone beatings, verbal abuse or corporal
          punishment.
          (x) Zhang Xudong, a worker and director of Changsha lift factory,
          was reportedly arrested in 1989 and taken to the Changsha No. 1 detention
          centre, where he was made to wear handcuffs and leg irons for nearly a year.
          According to the Government, the investigation of Zhang Xudong's circumstances
          is pending.
          (y) Zhang Ruiyu, a 54 year-old teacher at the Physical Education
          Academy in Xianyu county, Fujian province and a member of the New Testament
          church, was severely beaten by a group of officers from the local Public
          Security bureau who burst into her house on 31 May 1990. Reportedly, her face
          was burned with electric batons and she was beaten to the extent that her
          teeth were broken. According to the Government, Zhang Ruiyu was sentenced
          to four years' imprisonment in November 1991 for involvement in illegal
          activities and breach of the criminal law. During her incarceration she has
          never been subjected to beatings, verbal abuse or corporal punishment.
          (z) Zhou Mm was reportedly arrested in June 1989 in Changsha and taken
          to Changsha No. 1 detention centre where he was repeatedly ill-treated and
          beaten with electric batons. In June 1990 he was sentenced to six years'
          imprisonment and transferred to Hunan Provincial No. 1 prison in Yuanjiang.
          (aa) Zhu Mei, aged 73, a retired primary school teacher and member of a
          Protestant house-church in Shanghai, is reported to have been severely beaten
          on several occasions while serving a sentence of five years' imprisonment at
          Tilanqiao, Shanghai municipality's main prison. As a result of the beatings
          one of her knees was broken in 1991.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 37
          (bb) Zhang Lezhi, a Christian member of the banned New Testament church,
          was arrested on 8 September 1992 in Nine Lanes village, Shouguang county and
          taken first to a local police station and two days later to the Shouguang city
          detention centre. While in custody, he was reportedly assaulted by two police
          officers with an electric baton. After the beating his legs were allegedly
          manacled with fetters weighing nine kilograms; his hands were also handcuffed
          and the handcuffs and fetters were tied together with a short chain so that
          Zhang Lezhi had to stay bent at a 180-degree angle. The beatings reportedly
          continued while he was thus chained and an additional fetter was later added
          to his legs, bringing the total weight to 13 kilograms. According to the
          reports, he was chained in this painful position day and night for three
          months without the chains ever being removed, even for sleeping or eating.
          When the weather became cold, he reportedly requested permission to have the
          chains removed so as to put on additional clothes, but this was also denied.
          (cc) Zhu Zizheng was arrested in the same circumstances as Zhang Lezhi.
          According to the reports, he was forced to sit for a whole day on a so-called
          “security chair” ( anguan yi ) which had spikes on the sides. This chair is
          reportedly used at the detention centre for punishing inmates and any movement
          on the chair causes severe pain. Zhu Zizheng was reportedly beaten while he
          was sitting on the chair and had food forced into his mouth.
          159. With regard to these four last persons the Government replied that the
          investigation was pending.
          Urgent appeals
          160. In addition to the above-mentioned cases, the Special Rapporteur
          transmitted to the Government of China four urgent appeals on behalf of the
          persons mentioned in the following paragraphs, regarding whom fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture. The date on which the
          appeals were sent is mentioned in parentheses at the end of the corresponding
          summary.
          161. Sonam Wangdu and Ganden Tashi, prisoners at Drapchi prison, Lhasa, were
          said to be in very bad physical condition owing to the mistreatment they had
          suffered since their arrests in 1988. Fears for their lives were expressed
          unless they were given proper medical care and protection from further
          mistreatment. (16 December 1992)
          162. Rinchen Gendun, a tourist guide, and Lobsang Yanten (also known as
          Tsasur Choenzed) described as an elderly former monk from Drepung monastery,
          as well as a woman whose identity was not reported, were arrested at their
          homes in the Ramoche area in Lhasa on 13 May 1993 around midnight and taken
          to an unknown place. It was reported that the arrests were carried out
          approximately 48 hours before a visit to the region by a European Community
          delegation and, according to the source, the reason for the arrests was to
          prevent those people from contacting the members of that delegation. It
          was also alleged that in the past several people arrested in similar
          circumstances, including Sonam Wangdu, Lhundrups Kalden and Sonam Dolkar,
          had been held incommunicado and severely tortured: the first two are now
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 38
          said to be paralysed for life as a result of the torture; the third, a woman,
          was allegedly arrested and tortured for reportedly speaking to a foreign
          journalist. (21 May 1993)
          163. With respect to these cases the Government replied on 26 May 1993 that
          Rinchen Gendun, Lobsang Yonten and a woman had been detained in accordance
          with the law for interrogation. The woman was released the same day. The
          reason for detaining the other two was that they had stolen a large number of
          State secrets and engaged for a long time in separatist activities, which
          directly threatened China's national security. The judicial organ of China
          would look further into the case and handle it properly in accordance with the
          law. The arrests had nothing to do with the visit to Tibet by the European
          Community envoys.
          164. In the above-mentioned letter of 26 August (see para. 146) the
          Special Rapporteur communicated to the Government additional information
          he had received with regard to the third person arrested together with
          Rinchen Gendun and Lobsang Yonten, whose name was Damchoe Pemmo, a Lhasa
          trader in her mid-twenties. She was pregnant when she was detained and
          reportedly miscarried a week later after police forced her to remain
          standing for at least 12 hours and beat her with electric batons in the
          Seitru detention centre.
          165. In the evening of 27 March 1993 in the village of Taoyuan, Lijia
          township, in Xunyang county of Shaanxi province, a group of police officers
          broke into a religious meeting attended by some 26 local Christians and
          five others who had come from the neighbouring county of Ankang. Without
          explanation, the police reportedly started beating those present with
          truncheons, including a nine-year-old boy. The five Christians from Arikang,
          including a 22-year-old man named Lai Manping, were violently beaten before
          being taken to the local police station. Lai Manping was released a few days
          later but died shortly after as a result of the injuries sustained. Over
          90 Christians were said to have been arrested in the area following the
          incident. (25 May 1993)
          166. On 28 May 1993 the Government replied that three peasants from
          Ankang city in Shaanxi province, including a 21-year-old man named
          Lai Manping, had organized an unlawful gathering at the village of Taoyuan,
          Luhe district, in Xunyang county of Shaanxi province. The gathering, which
          disturbed the local social order, was outlawed by the local public security
          organ on 28 March. Mr. Lai was beaten on his bottom by local people with a
          bamboo pole for his wrongdoing and, as a result, he was injured slightly. He
          died of a heart attack on 6 April 1993. His death had nothing to do with the
          slight injury. Moreover, the report that 26 Christians were beaten by the
          police and over 90 were arrested was totally groundless.
          167. In the above-mentioned letter of 26 August the Special Rapporteur
          communicated to the Government additional information he had received with
          regard to this case, according to which the incident had occurred in the
          evening of 27 March 1993 in the village of Taoyuan, in Xunyang county, when a
          group of police officers broke into a religious meeting attended by some
          26 local Christians and five others who had come from the neighbouring county
          of Ankang. Without explanation, police reportedly started beating those
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 39
          present with truncheons and put handcuffs on the five Christians from Ankang,
          two of whom were women. The Ankang Christians, including Lai Manping, were
          then repeatedly beaten by police. The local Christians were reportedly forced
          to take part in the beating, under threat of being beaten themselves. The
          Jthkang Christians were then held for eight days in a local police station.
          Lai Manping was allegedly in a very bad state owing to the beatings and was
          released when police realized he might die in custody. He crawled a few
          kilometres away from the police station and died shortly after being found by
          local farmers.
          168. On 28 November 1993 the Government reiterated the information provided
          on 8 May 1993.
          169. Liu Gang, a former student leader imprisoned at the Lingynan No. 2
          labour-reform detachment in Liapning prison, was reported to be in very poor
          health as the result of continuous ill-treatment and harsh conditions of
          detention. Despite the fact that he suffered from heart and stomach trouble,
          psoriasis and a prolapse of the anus, he had reportedly been denied
          appropriate medical treatment. It was further reported that Liu Gang was
          subjected to severe ill-treatment, including electric shocks, after seeing his
          relatives on 2 October 1992, allegedly for telling them how he was being
          treated. (25 May 1993)
          170. Lodoe Phuntsok, a security assistant at the Lhasa city hospital and the
          Bharkor local police station, was reportedly arrested on 23 May 1993 for
          suspected involvement in “counter-revolutionary” activities and taken to the
          Seitru (Sei Chu or fourth unit), detention centre in Sangyip, north-east of
          Lhasa. (13 September 1993)
          171. On 25 October 1993 the Government replied with respect to this case that
          Lodoe Phuntsok had been detained on 20 May 1993 by the Tibet Autonomous Region
          public security organs for engaging in unlawful activities with the objective
          of dividing the country and overthrowing the Government. As he had
          acknowledged his guilt and his conduct had been good he had been released.
          He had received good treatment while under investigation.
          Observations
          172. The consistency of the reports reaching the Special Rapporteur and his
          predecessor over the years compels acknowledgement of the serious grounds for
          concern about the persistence of an extensive problem of torture and severe
          ill-treatment of prisoners in various parts of China, despite the existence of
          legal provisions aimed at repressing it. The Special Rapporteur is aware of
          the relevant conclusions and recommendations of the Committee against Torture
          (A/48/44, paras. 423-429) and associates himself with these, in particular the
          recommendations aimed at preventing prolonged incommunicado detention and
          bringing to justice persons responsible for torture. The Special Rapporteur
          recommends that, in accordance with the Standard Minimum Rules for the
          Treatment of Prisoners, and the Body of Principles for the Protection of All
          Persons under Any Form of Detention or Imprisonment, resort to prolonged
          solitary confinement and the use of shackles should be abandoned.
          Colombia
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 40
          Information transmitted to the Government
          173. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information on 17 cases of torture reported to
          have occurred in the country. These cases are described in the following
          paragraphs.
          174. Wilson Méndez was arrested by members of the army on 26 October 1992 in
          the city of Doncello, department of CaquetI, on suspicion of belonging to the
          opposition group Fuerzas Armadas Revolucionarias de Colombia (FARC) . He was
          taken to the Florencia Battalion where he was reportedly shot in the legs and
          had to be transferred to Maria Inmaculada hospital where he underwent surgery.
          According to witnesses, while he was in hospital the soldiers guarding him
          struck him with their weapons, inflicting fresh injuries to his legs. The
          medical personnel who attempted to intervene reportedly received death
          threats.
          175. Luis Fernando Martinez and his wife Sonebia Pinzôn Herrera had their
          house in Sabaneta, department of Santander, broken into during the night of
          7 November 1992 by a group of five soldiers from Mobile Brigade No. 2. Luis
          Fernando Martinez was taken to prison and his wife, Sonebia Pinzôn, and her
          two-year-old daughter, Marcela Becerra Pinzôn, were reportedly raped by the
          soldiers. Subsequent medical examinations were said to have confirmed these
          reports. According to the information received, four soldiers from
          Jthti-Guerrilla Battalion No. 18 (“Cimarrones”), connected with Mobile Brigade
          No. 2, were detained on accusations of child abuse, rape and conspiracy to
          break the law.
          176. Heberto Smnchez Tamayo, Diego Miguel Hernmndez and Astrid Liliana
          Rodriguez were part of a group of 18 persons travelling on a river boat from
          Tres Esquinas to Cartagena del Chain in the municipality of San Vicente del
          Cagumn, department of CaquetI, on 20 March 1993. The boat was reportedly
          intercepted outside Puerto La Ref orma by members of the army's Mobile Brigade
          No. 1, who forced some of the passengers, including the above-mentioned
          persons, to strip off their clothes and disembark. These persons were then
          interrogated on guerrilla activities in the area and tortured, in particular
          by suffocation in the mud of the river. Heberto Sanchez and Diego HernIndez
          had their arms and knees twisted and were hung upside down. Astrid Rodriguez
          was beaten on the feet with a hammer, had soap stuffed in her mouth and her
          breasts crushed. They were then transferred to Battalion No. 36 (“Montafla
          Cazadores”) at San Vicente del CaguIn where Astrid Rodriguez was subjected to
          further maltreatment.
          177. Gilberto Jurado AlvarIn, and Henri Cardona, were arrested
          on 3 August 1993 on the road from Fortul to Arauquita, department of Arauca,
          by members of the Reveiz Pizarro de Saravena Battalion of the Mechanized
          Cavalry. They were taken to Simon Bolivar School of Vereda “La Salve” where,
          they were reportedly beaten severely. Mr. Jurado was reportedly also
          subjected to drowning attempts in a nearby lake. Before being released four
          days later, they were forced to sign a declaration stating that they had been
          well treated.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 41
          178. The Special Rapporteur was also informed of the cases referred to below,
          which reportedly occurred in Barrancabermeja, department of Santander.
          179. Armando Gômez, was arrested on 18 April 1993 while riding a motorcycle
          near the Departmental Inspectorate of El Llanito in the municipality of
          Barrancabermeja by members of the armed forces. He was taken to a nearby farm
          where, while being interrogated, he was reportedly beaten and his head
          submerged several times in a basin of water to the point where he was close to
          drowning. He was then taken together with another 19-year-old who was also
          under arrest, Dimas Benavides, to the Nueva Granada Battalion where electric
          shocks were reportedly applied to their testicles, their necks and their feet
          while they were being beaten. They were released on 20 April.
          180. Miguel Jthgel Duque Valencia was arrested on 30 April 1993
          by 10 plainclothed men who took him to the Nueva Granada Battalion where
          he was subjected to such torture as suffocation, beatings and kicks in
          various parts of his body.
          181. José Manuel Rodriguez Sampayo was arrested on 1 May 1993 by a group of
          plain-clothed men who took him to the Nueva Granada Battalion, where he was
          subjected to suffocation and beatings all over his body to the point where he
          lost consciousness. Before being turned over to the government procurator's
          office he was forced to sign a declaration stating that he had been well
          treated.
          182. José Antonio Lôpez was arrested on 3 May 1993 by plainclothed men. He
          was reportedly taken to the Nueva Granada Battalion and led blindfolded
          through some of the north-eastern districts. In one of these districts they
          made him force open a door with his head. They then took him to a swamp where
          they repeatedly submerged his head in water, almost drowning him, and from
          there back to the Nueva Granada Battalion where it was reported that they
          submerged his head in water again, applied electric shocks to his testicles
          and burnt him with cigarettes.
          183. Orlando Noguera was arrested on 3 May 1993 by plainclothed men who bound
          his hands, feet and waist with barbed wire. They took him to the Nueva
          Granada Battalion where they poured acid into his stomach, producing ulcers.
          Still tied up, they took him to the north-eastern districts where they filled
          his mouth with mud, after which they took him to a marsh and repeatedly
          submerged his head in water for two hours. They then took him back to the
          Battalion where they reportedly trod on his testicles with boots, applied
          electric shocks to them, and stuck pointed sticks up his nose. They also
          reportedly kicked him in the ears, impairing his hearing.
          184. Yofre Cervantes Corzo was arrested on 3 May 1993 by plainclothed men. He
          was detained in the Nueva Granada Battalion for 32 hours during which he was
          subjected to rifle blows and electric shocks to his testicles, and his head
          was repeatedly submerged in water.
          185. Orlando Rueda Arguello was arrested by troops from the Luciano D'Elhuyart
          Battalion on 13 March 1993 at a military post near San Vicente de Chucuri. He
          was handed over to the San Vicente de Chucuri police who reportedly subjected
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 42
          him to such torture as introducing his head into a plastic bag into which
          water was then poured. They also reportedly stuck pins under his nails and
          beat him.
          186. By the same letter, of 26 August 1993, the Special Rapporteur reminded
          the Government of a number of cases transmitted in 1992 regarding which no
          reply had been received.
          Information submitted by the Government in connection with Commission
          resolution 1993/4 8
          187. In pursuance of this resolution the Government provided information on
          the results of the anti-drug programme for the period 1990 to August 1993. It
          also stated that, following a terrorist attack carried out by drug traffickers
          on 15 April 1993 in Bogota which caused the death of 10 persons, further
          measures in the framework of the emergency legislation had been adopted.
          Observations
          188. The Special Rapporteur is aware of the situation in Colombia, reflected
          in the Government's letter of 24 July 1992 noted in his predecessor's last
          report (E/CN.4/1993/26, para. 116) and characterized by brutal, violent acts
          of armed opposition groups and gangs of drug traffickers. The Government
          correctly does not claim that such acts, however atrocious in themselves,
          justify resort to torture by the official security forces or others acting
          with their complaisance. The Special Rapporteur looks forward to learning
          from the Government what measures it proposes to take to bring under control
          this problem which seems to be endemic, especially in zones of conflict.
          Cuba
          Information transmitted to the Government
          189. By letter dated 3 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received information on seven cases of prisoners
          alleged to have been grievously ill-treated in several prisons of the country.
          These cases are described in the following paragraphs.
          190. Julio Perez Benitez, 19 years old, a detainee at Agüica prison, province
          of Matanzas, was reportedly beaten on 19 May 1992 with rubber truncheons by a
          group of guards until he lost consciousness.
          191. Manuel Benitez Hernmndez who is serving a sentence for enemy propaganda
          in Boniato prison, Santiago de Cuba, was allegedly given a severe beating in
          September 1992 at the punishment area known as Boniatico, with the result that
          he received a head wound which needed several stitches, and bruises all over
          his body.
          192. Joel Alfonso Matos, a detainee at the Quivicmn prison, was said to have
          been beaten on 23 October 1992 by a group of seven guards, resulting in
          injuries to the mouth and one eye for which he had to be admitted to the
          San Antonio de los Baflos hospital.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 43
          193. Luis Alberto Pita Santos, President of an organization calling itself the
          “Asociaciôn Defensora de los Derechos Politicos”, was allegedly given a severe
          beating in December 1992 in Boniato prison which left him with a fractured
          arm. It is reported that he was later moved to the Camagüey maximum security
          prison, where he was imprisoned for months with his feet shackled from S a.m.
          until 9 p.m., and that, on 22 April 1993, he was wounded as a result of
          another beating given by a prison guard for having refused to wear a uniform.
          194. José Pascual Castillo, a detainee in the Manacas provincial prison,
          Villa Clara, was allegedly beaten on 15 February 1993 by several guards.
          According to the information received, Mr. Castillo was handcuffed and beaten
          with rubber truncheons and kicked until he almost lost consciousness;
          afterwards he was moved to a solitary confinement cell.
          195. Gerardo Montes de Oca, a detainee in Block 2 of the Combinado del Este
          prison, was said to have been severely beaten in May 1993 by four prison
          guards. He was then apparently moved to a sealed-up cell for three days,
          after which he had to be admitted to the prison infirmary because of the
          injuries he had suffered.
          196. Juan Carlos Aguiar Beatôn a detainee in the Guanajay prison in the
          province of Havana, was allegedly subjected to a severe beating on
          15 July 1993 by several guards, who beat him with rubber truncheons and other
          blunt objects. It was reported that the beating was prompted by Mr. Aguiar
          Beatôn's refusal to stop speaking to another prisoner through the window and
          that, as a result of the injuries he suffered, the prisoner died a few days
          later.
          197. The following two cases were also transmitted to the Government:
          (a) Heriberto Arce VIzquez was reported to have been brutally beaten on
          24 May 1992 in Santa Clara, Villa Clara, by several police officers when he
          was in the street with a group of young people, one of whom had shouted “Down
          with Fidel”. It was alleged that he was then taken to the third police unit,
          where he was also beaten, and that, as a result, he had to be taken to
          hospital, where he was issued with a medical certificate because of his
          injuries and prescribed complete rest.
          (b) René Contreras Blanch, a member of the “Partido Cubano de Derechos
          Humanos”, was reportedly assaulted on 16 March 1993 in Aguila Street, between
          Estrella and Reina streets in Central Havana, by several police officers who
          beat him and hurled a stone at him which caused a serious head wound.
          Urgent appeals
          198. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 16 December 1992 on behalf of Elizardo Smnchez Santa Cruz, leader of the
          group known as the Cuban Commission for Human Rights and National
          Reconciliation, who was detained at his home in Havana on 10 December 1992 by
          members of the State security forces. It was alleged that at the time of his
          detention Mr. Smnchez Santa Cruz was beaten and had to be taken to hospital.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 44
          On the following day he was transferred to the detention centre of the
          Technical Investigation Department situated at Calle 100 and Aldabô. Fears
          were expressed that he might be ill-treated or tortured while in detention.
          199. On 12 March 1993 the Government replied that E. Smnchez Santa Cruz had
          committed a breach of the peace during which he expressed angry and violent
          criticism of the country's political and social system and insulted citizens
          and neighbours who argued with him. This resulted in a fracas during which
          blows and insults were exchanged, ending in intervention by the forces of law
          and order. E. Smnchez Santa Cruz was taken to the Carlos J. Finlay military
          hospital; as this was the closest hospital to his home it is clear that there
          was no intention whatsoever to conceal the incident and its consequences. At
          the hospital he was given the necessary treatment; his injuries were described
          as slight, consisting of simple small bruises caused by punches, almost all of
          them from women. Subsequently he was taken to the Investigations Department
          situated at Calle 100 and Aldabô, where he was charged with disturbing the
          peace and, within the period specified in Cuba's criminal procedure law, was
          provisionally released on bail. At no time was he kept incommunicado, and his
          relatives were aware of his detention and the place thereof. With regard to
          the slight injuries suffered by E. Smnchez Santa Cruz, they quite clearly
          resulted from his altercation with his neighbours and were certainly not
          caused by the police.
          Dominican Republic
          Information transmitted to the Government
          200. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of reports he had received concerning an incident on 21 July 1993
          when the police tried to eject several peasant families from some land which
          had been allocated to them in the area of Mate de Palma, Guerra, during the
          1960s. One of the peasants, Juan Diaz Ulerio, was reported to have been
          severely beaten. Moreover, a merchant who had accompanied the police and laid
          claim to the land, poured petrol over Diaz Ulerio and, in the presence of the
          police, set fire to him. As a result, he was admitted to hospital with third
          degree burns.
          201. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur reminded the Government of the
          case of Felipe de Jesus Medrano Garcia, transmitted in 1992, regarding which
          no reply had been received.
          Ecuador
          Information transmitted to the Government
          202. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur drew the attention
          of the Government to the cases of the following six persons reported to have
          been tortured in establishments of the Office for the Investigation of
          Offences (OlD)
          203. William Fausto Andrade was arrested on 6 June 1992 at his home in the
          parish of El Eno, Sucumbios province, region of Amazonas, by two uniformed
          policemen and four plainclothed individuals who accused him of being involved
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 45
          in the death of a particular person. He was taken to the police station at
          Lago Agrio, and a few hours later, five policemen reportedly took him to the
          banks of the Aguarico river where he was interrogated and tortured.
          204. Victor Hugo Cadena was arrested by two policemen on 25 July 1992 in a
          street in the district of Atahualpa, southern Quito, and taken to the OlD at
          Pichincha. Here he was blindfolded, handcuffed and interrogated by four
          policemen in connection with the theft of some motorcycles. According to the
          information received, the policemen kicked him in the stomach and legs,
          suspended him with his hands tied behind his back and subjected him to
          electric shocks. Upon his release three days later he lodged a complaint with
          the OlD headquarters as a result of which he reportedly received threats from
          certain OlD officers.
          205. Julio Lara Term was arrested on 17 July 1992 in a northern district of
          the city of Quito and taken to the Pre-trial Detention Centre (CDP) . The next
          day he was taken to the offices of the OlD at Pichincha where he was
          interrogated in connection with a robbery. During the interrogation he was
          allegedly suspended by his arms, one of which was fractured in the process.
          He was then taken back to the CDP where he remained, reportedly without
          medical attention, until 29 July, when he was released.
          206. Felipe Moreira Chavez was arrested by the police on 20 August 1992 in
          Quevedo, province of Los Rios, on suspicion of having held up a bank. He was
          taken to the OlD where he died, reportedly as a result of the torture to which
          he was subjected, in particular electric shocks.
          207. Luis Olmedo Aguilera Lôpez was arrested by a policeman of the Pichincha
          OlD on 24 February 1993 at his home at Pintag, near Quito, on accusation of
          stealing cattle, and taken to the CDP in Quito. The next day he was
          transferred to the Pichincha OlD where his friends and relatives reportedly
          detected signs that he had been severely beaten and observed that he walked
          with difficulty. On 2 March he was reportedly taken to the Third National
          Police Station of the canton of Quito and then back to the CDP. The same day
          he had to be taken to Eugenio Espejo hospital, where he died. According to
          the autopsy report, his body was bruised.
          208. José Ignacio Chauvin, 17 years old, was arrested on 14 February 1993 in
          the city of Quito by policemen who took him to a police building where he was
          allegedly handcuffed to a chair and beaten in the face and stomach and on the
          soles of his feet. A few hours later he was released near the district of
          El Ejido.
          Egypt
          Information transmitted to the Government
          209. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received reports according to which torture was
          commonly practised in police stations, the headquarters of the State Security
          Intelligence at Lazoghly Square and on the premises of the Firag al-Amn
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 46
          (security brigades) and the State Security Investigations (SSI) police
          throughout the country. Official complaints lodged by lawyers with the
          Procurator General's Office regarding torture reportedly remain without
          response or apparent investigation.
          210. The Special Rapporteur was also informed that for the last three years
          the SSI has illegally used camps of the Central Security Forces (CSF) in the
          south of the country as centres for the detention and torture of detainees
          suspected of belonging to Islamist groups, with the aim of forcing them to
          give information or confess to charges against them, or as a form of
          punishment. The following camps were mentioned in particular: the Abnoub
          camp, on the eastern bank of the Nile, opposite the village of Assara, near
          Assiut city; the Qena camp, located in the vicinity of the Sawam'a area, 6 km
          from Qena city; the Fayyoum camp, in the Kahafah region, 15 km from Fayyoum
          city; and the Red Sea camp in Hurghada city, close to the Dahar police
          station. According to the reports no presidential decree has been issued
          setting up these camps (which are considered military zones) as special
          prisons, neither do they belong to the other categories of prisons established
          by Law 396 of 1956 on the organization of prisons, and as such they do not
          fall under the competence of the Prisons Authority responsible for the
          implementation of the statutes and decisions on the organization of prisons.
          Moreover, the camps are reportedly not subject to judicial supervision, lack
          official records in which the detention orders are registered, and detainees
          held in them are denied any contact with lawyers or family.
          211. The methods of torture prevalent at the CSF camps are reportedly the same
          as those used in SSI offices. They range from beating, whipping and hanging
          in awkward positions to the application of electric shocks to sensitive parts
          of the body, both directly and indirectly, by immersing the victim in water
          and passing an electrical current through it, as well as sexual abuse and
          threats of rape. The persons referred to in the following paragraphs were
          reported to have been tortured in these camps.
          212. Mohamed Bakri el-Sheik was arrested in 1990 and accused of setting fire
          to a video club. He was detained at the CSF camp in Abnoub and reportedly
          tortured during a week with beatings, hanging in awkward positions, electric
          shocks and sexual abuse.
          213. Ossama Bahey-Edin Mahmoud was arrested on 11 November 1991 and taken to
          the SSI offices in Assiut, where he allegedly was beaten. After one day he
          was transferred to the CSF camp in Abnoub, where he was held in a dark, humid
          cell without ventilation. From there he was reportedly taken to the camp
          hospital, blindfolded and handcuffed, and given electric shocks to sensitive
          parts of his body while suspended naked from a doorpost.
          214. Moustafa Seddik Ibrahim and Gamil Hassan Metwalli, were arrested
          on 2 January 1992 by the SSI and taken to SSI offices, where they were
          reportedly beaten and doused with ice-cold water, blindfolded and handcuffed.
          After two days they were taken to the Abnoub CSF camp hospital, where they
          were reportedly exposed to severe beating, hanging in complex positions,
          electric shocks and sexual assault.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 47
          215. Ashraf Aboul-Hassan Ibrahim and Saber Hamza Moubarak, were arrested by
          the SSI in Alexandria on 31 July 1992. For 17 days they were held at the SSI
          offices in Alexandria and the Al-Labban police station, where they were
          reportedly tortured. Subsequently, they were transferred to the CSF Qena camp
          where they were reportedly blindfolded, handcuffed, stripped naked, hung
          by the hands with pressure on the shoulders or weights to the feet, beaten
          with electric wires and sticks, doused with icy water and given electric
          shocks.
          216. Mohamed Elwi Ali, arrested on 13 March 1992, Hassan Mekkawi Hussein,
          arrested on 10 June 1992 and Atteya Ahmed Mohamed, arrested on 17 July 1992,
          were allegedly tortured at the CSF camp in Fayyoum with methods including
          beatings with sticks, the stubbing of burning cigarettes on their bodies and
          the application of electric shocks to sensitive parts of the body.
          217. The Special Rapporteur also transmitted to the Government the cases of
          torture described in the following paragraphs.
          218. Al-Sharif Hassan Ahmed, Ahmed Ibrahim ‘Abd al-Galil, Qassim Ibrahim
          Qassim Qettish, ‘Ala' al-Din Isma'il ‘Abbas Ramadhan and Mohammad Sa'id
          Mohammad ‘Abdu, were arrested in August 1992 in Alexandria under accusation of
          membership of an underground terrorist organization. One of them, Al-Sharif
          Hassan Ahmed, was sentenced to death and the others were given sentences
          ranging from a one-year prison term to life imprisonment. They were
          reportedly tortured following their arrest, and official forensic medical
          doctors who examined them found physical scars consistent with the torture
          they had alleged. Reported methods of torture included electric shocks on
          different parts of the body and beatings.
          219. Mahmoud Guhayni al-Sa'dawi was reportedly arrested on 29 February 1992
          and held in Istiqbal Tora prison until 21 May 1992, when he was transferred to
          the headquarters of the State Security Intelligence in Lazoghly Square. There
          he was reportedly severely tortured for six days and he subsequently died in
          the same building. An official inquiry by the Procuracy established that his
          death was due to circulatory and respiratory depression, but apparently failed
          to shed light on the circumstances surrounding the death.
          220. ‘Amer ‘Abd al-Mun'im, a journalist working for the opposition al-Sha'b
          newspaper, was arrested in July 1992 under accusation of possessing
          anti-government leaflets and held for one month at the SSI headquarters
          in Lazoghly Square. According to the reports, he was beaten and subjected
          to electric shocks on different parts of his body, in particular his left
          hand.
          221. Mohammed Ali Mohammed Ali was arrested on 24 January 1993 in Cairo on
          suspicion of car theft and taken to the Agonza police station. While in
          detention he was reportedly hung over a door and beaten on the soles of the
          feet. Following this the chief of investigation reportedly injected him
          with a mixture of water and faeces which eventually caused gangrene in his
          leg. As a result, he had to undergo three operations at the Qasr Al Alny
          hospital.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 48
          222. Information was also received about conditions prevailing in some of the
          main prisons in the Cairo area, in particular the Tora Istikbal and Abu Za'bal
          Liman prisons. According to the reports, security detainees are tortured as a
          matter of routine during interrogation by the 551 prior to their transfer to
          prison, and sometimes are secretly removed from prison to be tortured in 551
          custody. Methods of torture consist inter alia of beating with electric prods
          and leather whips with pieces of metal attached. The following individual
          cases were communicated.
          223. Dr. Mohammed As-Sayyid Said and Amir Salem, members of the board of
          trustees of the Egyptian Organization for Human Rights, and Hisham Mubarak,
          a lawyer, were arrested in August 1989 for their alleged membership of the
          Egyptian Workers' Communist Party and taken to the Abu Za'bal Liman prison.
          As a consequence of the beatings to which they were reportedly subjected
          Hisham Mubarak suffered a haemorrhage in his right ear and temporary loss of
          hearing, in addition to scars on his back and on the back of his head. He
          also was unable to move his right leg as a result of blows directed at his
          spine.
          224. It was also reported that medical care is often denied to prisoners who
          urgently require treatment or who have been recommended for specialized care
          at outside hospitals. Some prisoners allegedly died in prison hospitals or in
          their cells because of poor and non-existent medical care. This was the case
          of Talip Kilich, a 52-year-old Turkish prisoner at Qanater, who died in his
          cell after he was allegedly beaten by jail warders on 27 July 1991. It was
          also the case of Mohammed Mahmoud Shak, a Somali prisoner at Qanater, who died
          on 29 November 1991 after he was allegedly severely beaten for attempting to
          escape. Despite the 75 lashes authorized (with head, arms and legs tied on a
          piece of wood shaped like a cross) , about one hundred warders were said to
          have taken turns at beating him. He was later transferred to an underground
          cell where he died. He was allegedly not given any treatment for the wounds
          he sustained.
          225. By the same letter of 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur reminded the
          Government of allegations of torture transmitted in 1992, regarding which no
          reply has been received.
          Observations
          226. The Special Rapporteur shares the concern and alarm of the Committee
          against Torture (CAT/C/SR.170, para. 2) in respect of the serious problem of
          terrorism in Egypt. The terrorist acts are carried out by groups
          preposterously invoking religion to justify vicious attacks, often directed
          against civilians, Egyptian and foreign. He is also concerned by the
          Committee's assessment that torture is routinely practised in Egypt and that
          the difficult situation cannot justify departures from the absolute
          prohibition of torture, in respect of suspected terrorists or anyone. He
          endorses the Committee's suggestions and recommendations, in particular those
          aimed at putting an end to incommunicado detention and at bringing to justice
          those responsible.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 49
          Equatorial Guinea
          Information transmitted to the Government
          227. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which torture is
          habitually used in Equatorial Guinea as a means of extracting confessions from
          detainees or as a form of punishment. Although it is used principally against
          political detainees, it is reportedly also used against persons suspected of
          ordinary off ences. Methods of torture include beatings, applied particularly
          to the soles of the feet, electric shocks applied to the genital organs and
          hanging of the detainees by their feet or arms. Torture is common, above all
          during police detention, but it was reported also that prisoners already
          sentenced have sometimes been removed from prison by security forces and
          tortured.
          228. Conditions in the penitentiary centres are reported to be deplorable,
          particularly for women. Neither the “Black Beach” prison in Malabo nor Bata
          prison provides any real separation between men and women, and cases of sexual
          abuse and rape of women by male prisoners and/or guards are allegedly common.
          Medical care is systematically refused.
          229. The following individual cases were transmitted to the Government:
          (a) Aridrés Angue Abeso a former member of the town council of
          Sen-Esason, was arrested in April 1992 on accusation of having used magic
          against the authorities. He was said to have been severely beaten, and tied
          to a post and left in the sun for five hours.
          (b) Demetrio Alfara, TomIs Buechecu, Julio Esono, Enrique Ndong,
          Pablo Ndong, Gaspar Ondo and Guadalupe Ngue were part of a group of 29 persons
          who were detained on 1 September 1992 when the police raided the offices of
          the Progress Party of Equatorial Guinea (PPGE) at Malabo. The detainees were
          taken to the National Police headquarters, and the persons listed above were
          transferred to Playa Negra prison. All of them were reportedly beaten on the
          soles of their feet.
          (c) Esteban Juan Mbomio Nchama a prisoner serving a four-year sentence
          at Black Beach prison, was taken to a police station on 8 June 1991 for
          interrogation in connection with some prisoners accused of murder. His hands
          and feet were reportedly tied up, and he was beaten and suspended by the
          wrists for six hours until one of his arms broke. He was then taken back to
          the prison where he was kept in a punishment cell for seven months. No
          medical care was provided.
          (d) DImaso Abaga Nve died on 31 March 1993 allegedly as a result of
          torture inflicted on the premises of Ebebiyin police station. A doctor from
          the district hospital reportedly examined the body and confirmed a fracture of
          the left hand, three bruises to the head, two frontal bruises and interdigital
          cuts on the left hand.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 50
          230. The Special Rapporteur was also informed that, in connection with a
          peaceful demonstration held in Bata on 24 November 1992, about 40 students and
          teachers were arrested by the police and detained for two days. All of them
          were reported to have been seriously tortured.
          231. Furthermore, on 17 December 1992, about a hundred persons were arrested
          in Malabo, including teachers of the Rey Malabo National Institute of
          Secondary Education, and released about 10 days later. According to reports,
          most of them were repeatedly beaten on the head, back, genital organs and the
          soles of their feet. For example, Celestino Bacale, a member of the
          Convergence for Social Democracy, sustained serious injuries to the kidney
          area and broken teeth, and Arsenio Moro several broken ribs and a pierced
          tympanum.
          Urgent appeals
          232. The Special Rapporteur made urgent appeals on behalf of the persons
          referred to in the following paragraphs, with regard to whom fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture while in detention. The
          dates on which the appeals were transmitted appear in brackets at the end of
          the corresponding summaries.
          233. Twenty-one persons were arrested in Malabo at the end of August 1993 at
          the time of the return from exile of the leader of the Uniôn Popular party.
          It was alleged that the detainees were taken to the barracks of the former
          Moroccan Guard, where they were doused with petrol and left in the sun for
          several hours. One of the detainees, who was later released, allegedly
          suffered a severe beating which caused ear, leg and thigh injuries and left
          him with great difficulty in walking. It was also reported that one member of
          the Uniôn Popular, Pedro Motu, was detained on 22 August and died a few days
          later in Black Beach prison as a result of injuries caused by torture.
          (31 August 1993)
          234. Francisco Engono Micué, a 51-year-old civil servant from the municipality
          of Bata and his cousin José Ramôn Obama, were allegedly detained on
          31 August 1993 in Bata by members of the security police and beaten on the way
          to the police station. (3 September 1993)
          235. Tobias Obiang Nguema, a former army lieutenant, was allegedly detained on
          3 September 1993 in Ebebiyin in north-west Rio Muni province. It was reported
          that he was later transferred to Malabo, where he was interrogated at the
          military barracks situated in the vicinity of the President's palace, and that
          during interrogation he was severely tortured to force him to sign a
          confession concerning his involvement in an attempt to overthrow the present
          Government. (14 September 1993)
          Ethiopia
          Urgent appeals
          236. On 21 October 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government regarding the following staff of the regional office of the Oromo
          Relief Association (ORA) in Dire Dawa, eastern Ethiopia: Ahmed Mohamed,
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 51
          Abbas Said, Sharif Mohamed, Usman Umar, A u Haider, Abdulaziz Abdullah,
          Mohamed Ahmed, Ammw Hamid, Mohamed Abdu, Mussa Ibrahim, Raya Abdi,
          Hamid Jthdullahi, Galaye Tufe, Tajudin Abdullah and Mohamed Izzedin. According
          to the reports, they were arrested by members of the security forces between
          26 September and 2 October 1993, apparently under suspicion of links with the
          Oromo Liberation Front (OLF). They were believed to be held at the Hurso
          “re-education camp” near Dire Dawa, a former military training camp used since
          late 1991 as a detention centre for alleged OLF members. Fears were expressed
          that they might be subjected to torture.
          Guatemala
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          237. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur transmitted to the
          Government the following cases of torture that had allegedly occurred in the
          country:
          (a) Pablo Itzep Hernmndez, Cruz Luz Hernmndez and Manuel Eaten
          Hernmndez, peasants from the community of Xequiquel, Chiul, municipality of
          Cunén, department of El Quiche, and members of the “Runujel Junam” Council of
          Ethnic Communities (CERJ) were summoned to the military detachment of Chiul on
          8 May 1993. Upon arrival at the detachment they were reportedly subjected to
          interrogation under torture for four hours. Among other forms of torture
          they were reportedly kicked in the face and poked with pieces of burning
          wood. As a result of their injuries they had to be hospitalized after
          their release.
          (b) Santiago Cabrera Lôpez and Jthastasia Lôpez Calvo, alleged members
          of the National Revolutionary Unit of Guatemala, were arrested by members of
          the G-2 Military Intelligence Service in March 1991 near Colima I, San Pablo,
          department of San Marcos. They were taken to the military detachment of
          El Porvenir, San Pablo, where they were reportedly beaten severely.
          Cabrera Lôpez was reportedly thrown into a pit and subjected to electric
          shocks.
          (c) Julio César Reyes, a street child, was arrested on 14 March 1993 in
          zone 1, Guatemala City, by two policemen who asked for his identity documents.
          As he was unable to produce them, the policemen tried to take him to the
          police station, and Julio Cézar Reyes resisted their attempts. One of the
          policemen reportedly burned him on the left arm and fingers, producing a total
          of 29 burns.
          (d) Sergio Fernando Archila, student, was arrested on 3 August 1992 on
          6th Avenue, Guatemala City, by agents of the G-2 Military Intelligence Service
          who blindfolded him and took him to an unidentified military detention centre
          located near Cobmn, Alta Verapaz. While under interrogation he was reportedly
          burned with cigarettes, his head was covered with a hood soaked in insecticide
          and he was punched in the stomach.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 52
          238. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur thanked the Government for
          the reply provided on the case of Juan Pablo Lemus Silva (still under
          investigation) , transmitted in August 1992 and reminded it of a number of
          cases brought to its attention in 1992 regarding which no reply had been
          received.
          Urgent appeals
          239. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 22 July 1993 concerning TomIs Perez Perez, a member of the Peasants' Unity
          Committee, who was allegedly detained on 9 July 1993 in Chontall, Santo TomIs
          de Chichicastenango municipality, El Quiche department, by members of the
          national police together with armed men in plain clothes. According to the
          information received, TomIs Perez Perez was severely beaten during
          interrogation to obtain information on a number of brochures found in his
          house concerning Rigoberta Menchü, and the purpose of the exhumation, in 1991,
          of the bodies of 27 Indians buried in clandestine graves in Chontall.
          Information submitted by the Government in connection with Commission
          resolution 1993/4 8
          240. In a note verbale dated 19 November 1993 the Government stated that the
          internal armed conflict had caused, over the years, thousands of deaths,
          disappearances, refugees and displaced persons, as well as unjustified
          destruction of basic infrastructure and diversion of resources. It also
          stated that the guerrilla groups operating in the country had committed grave
          human rights violations in breach of domestic law and the international
          covenants, as well as a number of aggressions against the civilian population
          not participating in the conflict. The Government also referred to a number
          of measures taken to combat drug trafficking. It pointed out, however, that
          the activities carried out by drug traffickers could not be considered as
          terrorism, since they were not aimed systematically against the State.
          Haiti
          Information transmitted to the de facto Government
          241. By letter dated 8 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          de facto Government that he had received reports of torture and ill-treatment
          of civilians by the military, chefs de section and civilians working with
          them. Severe beatings were said to be practically automatic when an arrest
          took place and were daily occurrences in detention centres run by the military
          or the police. Beatings are also reported in the streets, either during
          demonstrations or when the security forces made incursions into a particular
          neighbourhood in Port-au-Prince or in the main cities. In these cases even
          women and children were severely beaten. It was also alleged that the
          Port-au-Prince police went to the places where the street children slept at
          night, usually around the city's cemetery, and beat them so that they moved to
          a less conspicuous place. The individual cases referred to in the following
          paragraphs were also transmitted.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 53
          242. Jude Damus, was arrested on 10 September 1992 by members of the
          armed forces following an anti-government demonstration in Dame Marie,
          Jthse d'Hainault, Grande-Jthse department. He was initially held in
          Jthse d'Hainault prison, where he was reportedly ill-treated on a daily basis,
          and later transferred to the prison in Jérémie. As a result of ill-treatment,
          one of his arms was broken.
          243. Rigend Sévére was reported to have been severely beaten by soldiers in
          Verrets on 10 October 1992 as a result of which his left hand was broken.
          244. Lerès Sidor was said to have been illegally arrested and severely beaten
          on 12 November 1992 in Desarmes by the section chief. The arrest and beating
          took place in the presence of three visiting Canadians and two Americans to
          whom he was showing a development project in his area. He was later taken to
          the military station where he was said to have been beaten again.
          245. Philippe Pierre, was arrested on 20 November 1992 and taken to the
          Petit-Goave military barracks where he died as a result of severe beatings.
          246. Jean Augustin, a member of a grassroots organization, was reportedly
          arrested in Port-au-Prince during the night of 30 November 1992 and taken to
          the Anti-gang Investigation Service, where he was severely beaten.
          247. Maurice Damucy, a member of the National Committee of Congresses of
          Democratic Movements (KONAKOM) , was reportedly arrested by soldiers on
          8 December 1992 in Bainet, South East department, and severely beaten.
          248. Dieuland Corjelas, a member of a peasants' organization near the
          north-western city of Jean Rabel, was arrested and severely beaten on
          6 January 1993 by the local section chief of the armed forces and his
          assistant.
          249. Raymond Amazan was arrested and beaten up on 11 January 1993 by members
          of the security forces in the town of Les Cayes, in South department.
          250. Origene Cirias was arrested on 15 January 1993 by the section chief of
          Saut d'Eau on the charge of being a Lavalas supporter. Soldiers were said to
          have severely beaten him, ripping out his beard and burning parts of his body
          with matches.
          251. Jean-Emile Estimable, a journalist with Radio Cacigue , was
          arrested on 22 January 1993 in the village of Pont Joux, 3rd section of
          Marchand Dessalines, Artibonite department, and transferred first to the
          prison of Marchand Dessalines and later to St. Marc prison. He was said to
          have been severely beaten, in particular by means of the “calotte marassa”,
          a simultaneous slap on both ears, usually given by someone standing behind.
          252. Ernst Jeudi was arrested on 7 February 1993 by an armed corporal in front
          of the Grande Desdunes church and taken to the Desdunes barracks. He was said
          to have been subjected to the “Jack” torture method, in which the victim is
          beaten up while having a stick placed under his thighs and above his arms.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 54
          253. Monsignor Willy Romélus, the Roman Catholic bishop of Jérémie, was
          reportedly attacked and beaten by a group of armed civilians after celebrating
          mass in the cathedral of Port-au-Prince. According to witnesses, members of
          the security forces stood by as the bishop was knocked to the ground,
          repeatedly punched in the face and kicked.
          254. Jean-Luc Antoine was reportedly beaten to death in early March 1992 by
          the military in Bainet, South-West department, after he was arrested by a
          corporal for walking in the streets while drunk.
          255. Patrick Bourdeaux, a member of a grassroots organization, was reportedly
          arrested and badly beaten by members of the armed forces on 1 March 1993 in
          Jérémie, department of Grande-Arise.
          256. Cajuste Lexius, Secretary-General of the Centrale Générale de
          Travailleurs (CGT) , General Workers' Union; Phabonor St. Vil and Saveur
          Aurélus, members of CGT, were reportedly arrested by uniformed members of the
          police belonging to the 3rd Company, in front of the Radio Caralbe office in
          Port-au-Prince on 23 April 1993. While in custody they were severely beaten
          with batons on all parts of the body and kicked. As a result, Cajuste Lexius
          was reported to have been unconscious for two days, to have his buttocks
          covered in open sores and to have suffered kidney failure.
          257. The Special Rapporteur was also informed that on 3 March 1993 a group of
          armed gunmen believed to be linked to government forces ransacked the house of
          Saint-Jean Servil, a United States resident, located at Avenue Pouplard,
          Port-au-Prince. The assailants beat his 73-year-old mother and beat and raped
          his wife.
          258. In addition to the above-mentioned cases, the Special Rapporteur received
          a list containing the following names of persons alleged to have been tortured
          after their arrest between June 1992 and January 1993 : Franckel Augustin,
          Waldeck Augustin, Serges Belval, Luc Bienaimé, Herlod Bourcicault, Wilfrid
          Bruno, Julien Cadet, Pierronvil Calixte, Clemard Canadien, Bona Charles, Roger
          Charles, Jean Chery, Georgette Dantes (a pregnant woman) , Arnold Dehoux,
          Franckel Delva, Daniel Demesmin, Jean Ernso Divers, Gabriel Dolce, Etienne
          Dorelus, Jean Denis Ducanord, Pomise Duverseau, (a 63-year-old woman) , Aldrine
          Duvivier, Jacques Eddy, Clerma Edmond, Mathurin Elusma, Jackson Etienne,
          Guerda Exenor, Lucien Fils Aimé, Germene Garconvil, Orilaire Guerrier, Volvick
          Guerrier, Monfiance Herard, Nelio Jabrun, Josue Jean Herard, Dutemps Jean
          Louis, Luciani Jean, Louisjean Joanis, Euclide Josassin, Stephen Joseph,
          Judith Lacouture, Janise Laroche, Francois Louis, Carlot Louis, Neder
          Marcelin, Altide Mathieu Louisdor, Jacob Michard, James Michel, Baptista
          Milot, Pierre Mixo, François Mondesir, Lucenie Myrthil, Titet Nenet,Abner
          Nicolas, Elvie Payoute, Denis Philippe, Charles Pierre, Jaccilia Pierre,
          Philippe Pierre, Auguste Porcelay, Nicolas Raymond, Fresnel Regis, Jean
          Baptiste Samson, Luckner Simeus,Patrick Somezil, Celiane St. Fleur, Jeancilia
          St. Hilaire, Pierre St. Louis, Selondieu Sylvestre, Christian Theodore,
          Maurice Theodore, Jean Thomas, Lepe Ti, Thony Pierre Vixamar, Huguens Voltaire
          and Voltaire Remy.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 55
          Urgent appeals
          259. On 6 December 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          de facto Government on behalf of Sergot Metazer, Djobit Cius and Bertrand
          Dorismon, inhabitants of the Raboteau shanty town, Gonalves, Artibonite
          department, who were arrested on 20 November 1993 in Port-au-Prince by
          soldiers. They were allegedly beaten on arrest and taken to the prison in
          Gonalves. Also on that date, Chatte Metayer and Anvi Charitable were arrested
          in Raboteau and allegedly tortured by the djak method.
          Observations
          260. The Special Rapporteur shares the concern reflected in the interim report
          to the General Assembly of the Special Rapporteur on the situation of human
          rights in Haiti that torture and ill-treatment by the military police and
          civilians working with them continue to be widespread and systematic in Haiti
          (A/48/561, paras. 68-77)
          India
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          261. By letter dated 9 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of reports he had received indicating that criminal suspects, as
          well as persons detained for political reasons, are routinely tortured in
          police stations in order to extract confessions or information and that many
          detainees have died as a result. Methods of torture include: pulling the
          victims legs far apart so as to cause great pain and internal pelvic injury;
          rotating a heavy wooden or metal roller over the victim's thighs; electric
          shock, applied to victims genitals, head, ears and legs; prolonged beatings
          with canes and leather straps; tying the victim's hands behind the back and
          suspending him or her from the ceiling by the legs; rape, threats of rape or
          molestation; deprivation of food and drink; keeping the person naked in the
          cold and in the burning hot sun in the summer.
          262. Information was also received according to which rape by the police is
          common throughout the country. The victims are generally poor women and those
          from vulnerable low-caste and minority groups who are taken into custody as
          suspects, or as hostages for relatives wanted in criminal or political cases
          or in order to extort payment to secure their release. Rape was also reported
          to take place during counter-insurgency operations in areas of conflict.
          263. The cases described in the following paragraphs were transmitted to the
          Government.
          264. Ganeshan, publisher and printer of the Tamil weekly newspaper Nakkeeran ,
          was arrested by Tamil Nadu police on 10 April 1992 after that newspaper
          published an editorial critical of the Tamil Nadu Chief Minister's treatment
          of the press. After his release on bail on 20 April, he reportedly collapsed
          in the Nakkeeran office while telling his colleagues how he had been tortured
          by police. He was rushed to a private hospital where he died.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 56
          265. On 3 December 1993 the Government replied that this person had been
          arrested in connection with the publication of an article in Nakkeeran
          containing scurrilous, seditious, obscene and defamatory remarks. He was
          immediately produced before the Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate who
          remanded him to judicial custody. A bail application was also moved which was
          posted for hearing on 16 April 1992, and to which the Magistrate recorded “No
          complaints of torture or ill-treatment” . No such complaint or plea for
          medical treatment was made by his counsel even during hearing on the bail
          application on 16 April 1992, which was dismissed. On 20 April 1992 bail was
          granted by the Principal Sessions Court, Madras. On being released,
          R. Ganesan was garlanded by the editor and staff of Nakkeeran near the central
          prison, Madras. A photograph of this event appeared in the Nakkeeran issue of
          30 April 1992, which made no mention of any torture or ill-treatment. The
          weekly had, however, mentioned that Ganesan was suffering from heart ailment
          and hypertension. He was admitted to Devaki hospital, on 26 April 1992. Even
          the medical report did not reveal any signs or evidence of his having been
          tortured.
          266. Nandagopal, a university employee belonging to the Scheduled Caste
          community, was arrested on 29 May 1992, reportedly in connection with a theft,
          and detained for interrogation. He died in custody in Annamalainagar police
          station, Chidambaram, South Arcot district, Tamil Nadu, on 3 June 1992,
          allegedly as a result of four days of torture. A post-mortem examination
          reportedly revealed 21 marks of injury to the body. Padmini, his second wife,
          was also arrested on 29 May and taken to the same police station. She was
          reportedly raped in her husband's presence by four police constables.
          267. Vidyadharan, president of a Congress Party “reformist” group in
          Karthikapally Panchayat, Haripad Taluk, Alappuzha district, Kerala, was
          arrested by the police on 18 February 1993 in Haripad. He was reportedly
          tortured in police custody and then rushed to Haripad government hospital,
          where he was declared dead on arrival.
          268. On 3 December 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          during Vidyadharan's detention at Haripad it was noticed that he had tried to
          hang himself. The following day it was noticed that he was lying motionless
          and was immediately removed to Haripad hospital where he was declared dead.
          A criminal case had been registered and the investigation was being carried
          out by the Inspector General of Police.
          269. Satyavan, from Jharoda Kalan village, died, allegedly of torture, in
          Najafgarh police station in Delhi on 2 March 1993. His friends Balraj, alias
          Billoo, and Ishwar Singh, who were arrested with him, reported that they had
          all been beaten in the police station until Satyavan collapsed.
          270. Rajinder Prasad, a worker at the India Safe Factory in Mayapuri
          industrial area, died on 11 April 1993, allegedly after being tortured by
          police and strongmen of the factory management. According to the reports, two
          policemen were suspended from duty and an inquest was held by a sub-divisional
          magistrate. However, no full inquiry by an independent authority was known to
          have been held and no further action was known to have been taken against the
          officials allegedly responsible for his death.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 57
          271. On 3 December 1993 the Government replied that on 11 April 1993 Rajinder
          Prasad and two others has reportedly been crossing the railway track when he
          was accidentally run over by a train. The investigation conducted by the
          Railway Police had indicated that the death was accidental. Subsequent to the
          death a complaint had been filed by one of the factory workers to the effect
          that they had been beaten by the factory owner. A case had been registered on
          this basis and the owner and others arrested. The case was still under
          investigation.
          272. The Special Rapporteur also received information according to which there
          has been a pattern of human rights violations committed by members of the
          security forces in the course of their operations in Jammu and Kashmir. These
          include reports of brutal torture and rape by members of the security forces,
          often in retaliation for attacks by Kashmiri militant groups on them. Torture
          is reportedly used as a means of extracting information from detainees,
          coercing confessions or punishing persons believed sympathetic to the
          guerrilla forces. Every government force operating in Kashmir, including the
          Indian Army and India 's federal paramilitary forces, the Central Reserve
          Police Force (CRPF) and the Border Security Force (BSF), has its own
          interrogation centres in Kashmir. Detainees are reportedly first interrogated
          by the detaining security force for periods of time which may range from
          several hours to several weeks. During this time the detainee is not produced
          before a court or given access to anyone outside the interrogation centre.
          273. It was also reported that security personnel routinely ignore procedural
          safeguards when taking persons into custody. Although Indian law requires
          that everyone taken into custody must be produced before a magistrate within
          24 hours, in fact detainees are rarely produced at all. Prohibitions and
          safeguards against torture in the Indian Penal Code and the Code of Criminal
          Procedure, which prohibit the use of coerced confessions and prescribe
          inquiries into deaths in custody and prison terms for officers guilty of
          torture, are also routinely disregarded. Security personnel responsible for
          torture in Kashmir have reportedly never been held criminally liable for their
          actions.
          274. It was further reported that the use of rape is common in Kashmir as a
          weapon against women suspected of being sympathetic to or related to alleged
          militants; or as a form of retaliation against civilians believed to be
          sympathetic to the militants. The authorities have rarely investigated
          charges of rape by security forces and those which were investigated did not
          result in criminal prosecutions. Incidents of this kind have been reported,
          for example, in Chak Saidapora, near Shopian, district Pulwama; Haran, near
          Srinagar; and Gurihakhar, Handwara district. The individual cases referred to
          in the following paragraphs were transmitted to the Government.
          275. Muzaffar Ahmed Mirza was arrested on 4 October 1991 in Tral, a village
          about four kilometres south of Srinagar. He was allegedly beaten and given
          electric shocks to the genitals. After that, an iron rod was inserted into
          his rectum and pushed through to his chest. He was found by the side of a
          road and taken to the Medical College hospital the next day in severe pain.
          The next day he underwent chest surgery which revealed a large laceration of
          the diaphragm and left lung. Within two or three weeks, he died of subsequent
          internal infection.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 58
          276. Manzoor Ahmed Ganai, a resident of Wakoora district, Gahderbal, Jammu and
          Kashmir, was reportedly arrested on 7 January 1993 along with 14 other persons
          by soldiers from the army 10th Bihar regiment, during a search operation in
          his village. He was reportedly tortured for 10 days with electric shocks,
          beaten with sticks and guns and trampled on by soldiers. He was then alleged
          to have been hung upside down for some 24 hours until he lost consciousness
          and had the back of his thighs burned with paraffin.
          277. On 3 December 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur
          that Manzoor A. Ganai had been released after questioning and returned to
          his family on 22 January 1992. On 14 February 1992 he died in hospital.
          A medical examination had revealed that death was due to renal failure.
          A complaint had been filed on 28 May 1993 by his father and an investigation
          was being conducted.
          278. Nazeera Jan, was gang raped on 25 May 1993 at her domicile, in front of
          her children, by soldiers of the Rajput Rifles stationed at Zainakote
          industrial area situated on the outskirts of Srinagar.
          279. Masroof Sultan, a college student from Batamaloo, was taken into custody
          by the paramilitary Border Security Force (BSF) on 8 April 1993. He was
          reportedly beaten by four soldiers, blindfolded and, along with three other
          young men, taken to a building where four BSF agents tried to force him to
          admit he was a militant. When he refused he was reportedly hung from a pole
          by his knees and beaten until his leg was broken. He was subsequently
          transferred to Papa II, an interrogation centre near Srinagar where he was
          allegedly given electric shocks. He was finally shot at several times, but
          survived his injuries.
          280. A similar situation seems to prevail in Punjab, where special legislation
          (Terrorist and Disruptive Activities Prevention Act, TADA) allegedly grants
          the security forces arbitrary powers to arrest and detain people without
          ordinary legal safeguards and without charge or trial. Prisoners are held in
          illegal, unacknowledged detention for weeks and sometimes months, without
          being brought before a judge. In addition to this, the law provides that
          confessions made before an officer above the rank of superintendent of police
          are admissible as evidence. According to the reports, these circumstances
          facilitate the occurrence of torture, which is alleged to be practised
          systematically in police stations, in prisons and in the detention camps used
          by the paramilitary forces. The individual cases described in the following
          paragraphs were transmitted to the Government.
          281. Gurmit Kaur, from Bham village (Batala) , was arrested on 21 April 1989 by
          police officers of the Kathu Nangal police station, who questioned her about
          her father's links with opposition groups. While in police custody, she was
          reportedly beaten up, hung upside down and gang-raped. She was released
          without any charges three days later and had to be taken to Dhaliwal hospital.
          282. Gurbir Singh, from Ghungrana village in Ludhiana district, was arrested
          at the end of 1991 and taken into custody by the Ludhiana police who allegedly
          subjected him to severe beating. After his release from prison he had to stay
          in hospital for several weeks.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 59
          283. Harjinder Kaur, wife of Hardeep Singh of Latala village, was reportedly
          beaten on 11 August 1992 by members of the police who searched her house.
          Hardeep Singh, her husband, Nasib Kaur, her sister and Amarjeet Singh, her
          brother-in-law, were also reported to have been severely beaten before being
          taken away to Sudhar police station. As a result of the injuries sustained
          Harjinder Kaur died that evening in Kundan Lal hospital.
          284. On 3 December 1993 the Government replied that on receipt of definite
          information that Hardeep Singh was harbouring hardcore terrorists, his house
          had been raided and a case registered. Regarding the death of Harjinder Kaur,
          it was reiterated by the State government that she was hit by a buffalo in her
          own compound. She was rushed to a nearby hospital where she succumbed to her
          injuries. As it was a case of unnatural death, inquest proceedings under
          section 174 of the Criminal Penal Code were conducted. A statement made by
          the elders of Village Latala categorically stated that Harjinder Kaur died due
          to injuries received from a buffalo in her house. The post-mortem report
          conducted by a team of doctors of the Ludhiana civil hospital concluded that
          death was due to haemorrhage and shock as a result of extensive injuries
          caused by the buffalo.
          285. Bhai Gurdev Sikh, a Sikh religious preacher, was arrested on
          25 December 1992 by members of the Jagraon police. He died several days
          later, reportedly as a result of torture.
          286. Bishambar, was arrested on 6 October 1992 at Nikhri village, state of
          Haryana, by members of the police who allegedly whipped him with a strap made
          from tyre rubber, beat him and, while he was unconscious, castrated him.
          287. Vikal Kumar Adhana, an assistant in the Ministry of Finance from Tigaon,
          Faridabad, Haryana, was arrested from the Rajdeep Hotel in the afternoon of
          23 February 1993 by the Central Bureau of Investigation (CBI) on suspicion of
          impersonation and demanding a bribe. He was first interrogated in the CBI
          office and later in the evening was taken to the Lodhi Colony police station.
          The police apparently made no entry in the daily diary of Vikal Kumar's
          arrest. He was found dead in the lock-up the following morning. Although,
          the police claimed that he hanged himself, the “death report” listed several
          injuries on his body indicative of torture.
          Urgent appeals
          288. The Special Rapporteur transmitted to the Government four urgent appeals
          on behalf of the following persons, regarding whom fears were expressed that
          they might be subjected to torture while in detention. The date on which the
          appeals were sent is mentioned in brackets at the end of the corresponding
          summary.
          289. Mohinder Singh Grewal, a lawyer, Secretary-General of the International
          Human Rights Organisation (IHRO) in Ludhiana, Punjab, was reportedly called
          for interrogation on 23 and 24 March 1993 at the premises of the Criminal
          Investigation Agency in Ludhiana. A senior officer of the Punjab police
          allegedly subjected Mr. Grewal to ill-treatment and threatened him with severe
          torture or murder if he continued making reports on alleged human rights
          abuses by the police. (5 April 1993)
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 60
          290. With respect to this case the Government stated that members of the Delhi
          police had gone to Ludhiana to investigate the kidnapping of a Delhi
          businessman. Mohinder Singh Grewal had been called to the Office of the
          Inspector (CIA) , Ludhiana, for questioning, since the Delhi police had
          information that the kidnappers had used his telephone. It was categorically
          denied that Mohinder Singh Grewal had been ill-treated, either by the
          Superintendent of Police (Detective) , Ludhiana, or by anyone else. It was
          also denied that his diary had been either seized or confiscated or that he
          had been forced to reveal his personal telephone numbers.
          291. The family of Rupesh Singh, an 18-year-old student who allegedly died as
          a result of torture inflicted in May 1992 at the Durgapur police station, West
          Bengal, reportedly fled to Gurgaon in Haryana after the police threatened them
          with dire consequences for filing a complaint. However, Rupesh Singh's mother
          and sister, Seema Raghavan and Kanta Devi, returned in November 1992. In
          January 1993 a civil rights organization filed a case at the Calcutta High
          Court and Seema Raghavan and Kanta Devi took part in this. Subsequently the
          police allegedly came to their house and abused and threatened them again.
          (8 April 1993)
          292. Gurjit Singh was reportedly arrested by five plainclothed policemen on
          8 May 1993 at Mohi village in Ludhiana, Punjab. On 11 May police authorities
          unofficially admitted that Gurjit Singh was in their custody. Access to
          family and lawyers was denied. (17 May 1993)
          293. Nazir Ahmed Misri, a school teacher, was allegedly taken into custody on
          7 June 1993 during a military operation by the Border Security Forces in the
          area of Zero Bridge, Srinagar. Fears were expressed that he might be
          subjected to torture or ill-treatment while in detention. (25 June 1993)
          Information received from the Government with regard to cases included in
          previous reports
          294. The Government forwarded information on a number of cases of alleged
          death under torture transmitted by the Special Rapporteur in August 1992.
          A summary is given in the following paragraphs.
          295. Jairam Singh, died at Patel Nagar police station on 18 August 1991.
          On 10 December 1992 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that four
          policemen had been arrested and placed under suspension for having exceeded
          their authority and inflicted physical torture. The case was pending trial in
          the Court of Additional and District Sessions Judge, Delhi. A departmental
          inquiry had been ordered with regard to an inspector present at the police
          station premises when the interrogation of Jai Ram Singh took place, and he
          had been transferred to a non-sensitive place.
          296. Uppuleti Chandraiah, from Peechupalli, Karimnagar district, died in
          March 1991 at the Husnabad police station. On 11 December 1992 the Government
          informed the Special Rapporteur that an inquiry had been conducted by the
          District and Sessions Judge who concluded that Uppuleti Chandraiah had been
          unlawfully detained in the police station and was beaten with a Lathi (stick)
          resulting in multiple injuries which caused his death. He had not committed
          suicide by hanging himself with a piece of cloth in the police lock-up room.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 61
          One police officer was held directly responsible for causing death and five
          other assisted him in causing the death of the deceased. The medical officer
          who conducted the post-mortem examination was also held responsible for
          wantonly and deliberately issuing a false post-mortem examination certificate
          to save the police personnel. The findings of the Commission were accepted by
          the state government and one police officer was suspended. The doctor who
          conducted the post-mortem examination was also suspended and departmental
          action was taken against him. The case is at present under investigation.
          297. Kuttappam of Neyyattinkara, Trivandrum, was arrested on 3 July 1991 by
          Parassala police, Trivandrum and died the day after. On 14 December 1992 the
          Government informed the Special Rapporteur that Kuttappam had been found
          lurking inside a coconut garden at Alampara on the night of 9 July 1991 and
          was detained by the watchman who informed the police of Parassala police
          station. After inquiries revealed that Kuttappam was a lunatic, he was
          released at 10.30 a.m. and died at 19.00 hours on 10 July 1991. A criminal
          case was registered and investigations were conducted by the State Criminal
          Branch on 17 July 1991 which disclosed that the watchman and two others
          jointly assaulted Kuttappam causing grievous injuries to his spleen prior to
          the arrival of the Parassala police. After completion of the investigations,
          a charge was filed on 19 March 1992 before the court of law and the case is
          subjudice .
          298. Bulbul Bare, from Puli Nahoroni village, Kherajghat, Maza Lakhimpur, was
          arrested on 12 October 1991 by the army in Bandardawa village and died on
          22 October. On 21 December 1992 the Government informed the Special
          Rapporteur that Bulbul Bare was a member of the United Liberation Front of
          Assam (ULFA) , a terrorist organization. He was questioned in connection with
          his activities in the ULFA by security forces on 14 October 1991, but released
          on 15 October 1991 and returned to his uncle's house. He made no complaint of
          torture. He died in his uncle's house on 20 October 1991. On the basis of a
          post-mortem report a police case was nevertheless registered and
          investigations are in progress.
          299. Dibakar Handique, from Basapukhuri, Dholpur Maiza, Narayanpur,
          North Lakhimpur, was arrested on 28 September 1991 and died on 1 October
          in an army camp. On 21 December 1992 the Government informed the Special
          Rapporteur that he had died in security force custody as the result of
          illness. To clarify the circumstances of his death, a magisterial inquiry
          had been instituted and was in progress.
          300. Dhruvajyoti Gogoi was arrested on 17 March 1991 at Doomdooma, Tinsukia,
          by the army. Two days later his body, bearing marks of torture, was handed
          over to the police. On 22 December 1992 the Government informed the Special
          Rapporteur that Dhruvajyoti Gogoi, a ULFA terrorist, was apprehended
          on 18 March 1991 from Naharani village by security forces conducting
          anti-terrorist operations. A large quantity of weapons, ammunition and
          money were recovered from his possession and from caches revealed by him.
          He died on 19 March 1991 while under arrest. The likely cause of death was
          head injuries sustained by the individual during a scuffle preceding his
          apprehension. A judgement was subsequently passed by the Guwahati High Court
          on 18 June 1991 wherein the court ordered an ex gratia payment of an amount of
          money to the parents of Mr. Dhruvajyoti Gogoi.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 62
          301. Gambhir Gogoi, from Nagajan, Duliajan, Dibrugarh district, was arrested
          by the army at the end of November 1990. A few days later his body, bearing
          marks of torture, was handed over to the police. On 23 December 1992 the
          Government informed the Special Rapporteur that Gambhir Gogoi had been
          detained for questioning on suspicion of involvement in ULFA terrorist
          activities. He admitted that he was working for ULFA under threat and
          volunteered to assist the Army and to guide the security forces to “Saraipung
          Forest” where ULFA had a major camp. Near the camp a heavy exchange of fire
          took place between the army and ULFA militants. ULFA militants also exploded
          many improvised explosive devices. In one such blast, Mr. Gambhir Gogoi and
          two security personnel protecting him sustained serious injuries. Mr. Gogoi
          was promptly evacuated and given medical attention but he died as a result
          of his injuries. A post-mortem was conducted which confirmed the cause of
          death.
          302. Savinder Singh, a resident of South Delhi, was arrested on
          28 February 1992 and taken to the Directorate of Enforcement of the Ministry
          of Finance at Loknayak Ehavan, near Khan Market. The day after, his body was
          found in the Lok Nayak Ehavan Complex. On 24 December 1992 the Government
          informed the Special Rapporteur that an investigation had been conducted and
          serious lapses on the part of the officials concerned were found. Action
          against two officers of the Directorate of Enforcement had been recommended.
          Meanwhile, the Supreme Court of India had issued orders that the Additional
          District and Sessions Judge, Delhi, conduct the investigation and submit a
          report direct to the Supreme Court. The matter was at present subjudice .
          303. Ram Singh, Sarpanch of Arra Koder village, died in early April 1992 at
          the Bohandiguda police station. On 28 December 1992 the Government informed
          the Special Rapporteur that on 9 April 1992, Mr. Ram Singh had died in his
          village and his body had been cremated by relatives without informing the
          police or the district officials being informed. Later on, it was alleged
          that Ram Singh had died as a result of mistreatment by police officers. As
          the body of the deceased had been cremated no post-mortem or inquest could be
          conducted; however, it was found prima facie to be a case of misbehaviour by
          police personnel of Kodehar police station. Consequently, a sub-inspector was
          suspended on 14 April 1992. A magisterial inquiry, currently taking place,
          was ordered separately on 21 April 1992.
          304. Muthusamy from Oddanchathram, Dindigul district, was arrested at the
          beginning of 1992 by the Oddanchathram police in connection with a theft.
          Subsequently, his mother, sister and father were also arrested. According
          to the reports, they were all beaten and, as a result, Muthusamy died.
          On 29 December 1992 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          Mr. Chinnan, alias Muthan or Muthusamy, had been arrested in a criminal case
          registered at Ambilikai police station. On 8 January 1992 he developed chest
          pain and giddiness. He was taken immediately to the local hospital from where
          he was taken to the government hospital, where he was declared dead. An
          enquiry was conducted, and the state government issued orders on 11 May 1992
          to initiate departmental action against five police personnel for negligence
          of duties. The necessary follow-up action was being taken.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 63
          General information provided by the Government
          305. On 9 December 1993 the Government provided the Special Rapporteur with
          information in reply to the general allegations contained in his letter of
          9 August 1993. According to the Government, the allegations that security
          personnel routinely ignore procedural safeguards, that victims are rarely
          produced before a magistrate, that prohibition and safeguards in the Indian
          Penal Code and the Code of Criminal Procedure are routinely disregarded, and
          that the security personnel have never been held criminally liable for such
          acts do not conform to the facts.
          306. In consonance with constitutional provisions, the legal codes concerning
          the administration of justice contain elaborate provisions to safeguard the
          basic human rights to life and liberty and due process of law. Numerous other
          laws and regulatory provisions are directly aimed at protecting citizens
          against human rights violations.
          307. Complaints against security personnel are investigated and action is
          invariably taken against those found guilty. Even the various special laws
          that have been enacted to combat terrorism ensure that no provisions guarantee
          any form of impunity to the law enforcement and security forces against
          prosecution or other disciplinary proceedings for any acts committed in the
          exercise of powers conferred by those laws.
          308. In the State of Jammu and Kashmir alone, during the ongoing phase of
          terrorism and insurgency, action has been taken against 170 officers and men
          of the army and security forces, which includes rigorous imprisonment and
          confinement, dismissal from service, suspensions pending inquiry and other
          forms of departmental punishment, which could have long-term implications on
          the career prospects of the concerned personnel.
          309. In addition to the constitutional and legal safeguards, the judiciary has
          acted zealously to protect these rights. The actions of the State in
          maintaining law and order are subject to judicial review. Even the findings
          of courts martial and other inquiries can be challenged by affected persons
          and are liable to scrutiny in a civil court. A magisterial inquiry is
          mandatory for deaths in custody, in addition to an inquiry by a police
          officer.
          310. Judicial proceedings at all levels are open to the public, and are
          routinely analysed in the media. No issue of consequence goes unaired, owing
          to the vigilance of the press. In addition, rules of locus standi are much
          wider and considerably more liberal in India than in most other countries and
          give full latitude to voluntary, non-governmental organizations to espouse the
          cause of human rights in courts of law.
          311. With regard to Punjab, and Jammu and Kashmir, India faces a situation of
          terrorism of unparalleled ferocity. In this environment, the normal criminal
          laws of the land and the systems by which they are operated have been rendered
          ineffective and inadequate. In order to protect the human rights of the
          population, special legislation had to be enacted. Of these, TADA (Terrorist
          and Disruptive Activities (Prevention) Act) is temporary legislation, subject
          to Parliamentary review every two years, and the Armed Forces (Special Powers)
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 64
          Act extends only to areas which may, for the time being, be declared
          “disturbed” areas. In all such special legislation scrupulous care has been
          taken to protect the rights of the individual under due process of law.
          Habeas corpus is available to all under the Indian judicial system in all
          circumstances. Under TADA, detainees are required to be produced before a
          magistrate within 24 hours. If detention is confirmed, the detainee always
          remains under judicial custody through the order of a competent court.
          312. There is an express provision in section 20 (3) of the Act by which the
          provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure concerning the duty to produce a
          person arrested before a magistrate within 24 hours have been applied to
          persons arrested under this Act. Further, detainees have the full right under
          the existing laws to have contact with their lawyers and there are no
          restrictions whatsoever on legal aid and assistance. The members of the
          family are also informed and, in fact, visit them regularly while in judicial
          custody.
          313. The Special Rapporteur had expressed concern that that legislation
          provided for a confession made before an officer above the rank of
          superintendent of police to be admissible as evidence and that such
          circumstances facilitated the occurrence of torture, which was alleged to be
          practised systematically in police stations, in prisons and in the detention
          camps used by the paramilitary forces. Section 15 of TADA had been provided
          to ensure that only very senior officers, not below the rank of superintendent
          of police, who headed a police district and had completed at least one third
          of his professional career, had been given this authority. By virtue of their
          position, it could be reasonably assumed that they would act in a fair,
          judicious and unbiased manner. More importantly, evidence based on any such
          confession was rebuttable by virtue of the provisions of section 15 (2) of
          TADA, which cast on the police officers the responsibility of certifying that
          they had explained to the person concerned that he was not bound to make a
          confession, and that such confession could be used against him, and that the
          confession had been recorded by them and read out to the person making it. It
          was also provided that every confession so recorded should be sent forthwith
          to the Chief Judicial Magistrate, who should then forward the recorded
          confession to the designated court.
          314. The reference to the vulnerability of women to rape while under detention
          was unfounded and did not conform to the facts. Specific and clear-cut
          provisions had been made in the Indian Penal Code defining the offence of rape
          in custody and introducing a presumption against the accused. Custodial rape,
          if proved, could carry a life sentence. Deterrent punishment was provided for
          violation of these laws, particularly for those who were appointed in trust to
          protect such rights.
          315. The Government also provided the Special Rapporteur, on 28 October 1993,
          with information about the newly established National Human Rights Commission.
          The Commission has among its functions to inquire suo moto or on petition into
          complaints of violation of human rights; in this context, it may recommend
          initiation of proceedings for prosecution or such other action as it may deem
          fit against the concerned person or persons, and inter alia also recommend to
          the concerned authorities the granting of immediate interim relief to the
          victim or his family members.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 65
          Observations
          316. The Special Rapporteur recognizes that India's tradition of respect for
          the rule of law means that serious cases of torture, in particular those
          resulting in death, may lead to disciplinary action and in some cases to
          criminal proceedings. He would be grateful for further information on the
          results of the various investigation or criminal or disciplinary proceedings
          referred to in the Government's replies. As regards action taken against
          officers in Punjab and in Jammu and Kashmir, the Special Rapporteur would also
          appreciate learning which such actions were in response to acts within the
          Special Rapporteur's mandate. The Special Rapporteur is also sensitive to the
          “ferocity of the terrorism” faced by the Government of India in those
          territories. He understands that the Government of India is not seeking to
          invoke this serious problem to condone torture. The Special Rapporteur also
          looks forward to receiving information on the success of the new National
          Human Rights Commission in addressing this problem.
          Indonesia
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          317. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which, although
          torture and ill-treatment are proscribed by the Constitution, the state
          ideology Pancasila , the Criminal Code and the Code of Criminal Procedure,
          it has been used routinely in Aceh by military and police authorities since
          mid-1989, resulting in death in a number of cases. Torture has reportedly
          been used against suspected supporters of the Aceh Merdeka movement, as well
          as their colleagues or relatives, in order to obtain information or to
          intimidate.
          318. The methods most commonly used reportedly are: beating on the head,
          shins and torso with fists, lengths of wood, iron bars, bottles, rocks and
          electric cables; kicking with heavy military boots; burning with lighted
          cigarettes; electrocution; slashing with razor blades and knives; death
          threats, faked executions and deliberate wounding with firearms; pouring water
          through the nose; immersion for long periods in fetid water; suspension upside
          down by the feet; placing heavy objects on knees and other joints; isolation,
          sleep and food deprivation; mutilation of the genitals, sexual molestation and
          rape.
          319. Incidents of torture and ill-treatment are reported to have taken place
          at virtually every level of the military command structure, and in dozens of
          security force installations. The districts most commonly cited are those of
          Pidie, Aceh Utara, Aceh Timur, Aceh Besar and Aceh Tengah. Sometimes
          detainees have also been transferred to various military and police
          installations in Medan, North Sumatra, where they have also been tortured.
          According to the reports, the fear of being returned to military custody and
          of facing further torture compels many of those tried for political crimes to
          plead guilty and offer no defence. The cases described in the following
          paragraphs were transmitted to the Government.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 66
          320. Nasrun Majid was arrested in June 1990 when a group of about 40 soldiers
          came to his family's house in Alue Nirih, Peureulak, in search of his elder
          brother, a suspected Aceh Merdeka activist. He was held for 11 days at the
          Aceh Utara District Military Command in Lhokseumawe, during which time he was
          reportedly beaten on the shins and head with a wooden club while being
          questioned about the whereabouts of his brother.
          321. Ishak bin Ismael, a village head, was arrested by security forces in 1992
          and taken to the police station at Baktia, where he was tortured to death.
          According to reports, police placed a large wooden beam across the back of his
          neck and then stood or jumped on it until he was dead.
          322. Ismail bin Gani, a civil servant at the office of the Regent of Pidie,
          was arrested by military authorities in March 1992 in the village of Paloh.
          He was reportedly held incommunicado at the Kopassus headquarters in Rancong
          for two months, during which time he was repeatedly beaten. When his wife was
          allowed to visit him in May 1992 his arms and legs were broken and he had to
          be carried by soldiers.
          323. Information was also received indicating that in April 1992 at least a
          dozen people of the village of Tjot Kruet, Pase, were beaten by soldiers
          searching for two suspected members of Aceh Merdeka. The victims, who
          included three elderly men, were also forced to beat members of their own
          families, to crawl over rough terrain and to stare into the sun for several
          hours.
          324. Torture or ill-treatment was also reported to be routinely used against
          criminal suspects in other parts of the country, as in the following two
          cases:
          (a) Sofyan Lubis, a shoe-shine boy aged 16 accused of stealing
          clothes, died in the Tanjung Gusta children's prison in Medan in
          September 1992. According to relatives and lawyers his corpse bore clear
          signs of torture; his stomach, chest and neck were severely bruised,
          two teeth were missing and blood was coming from his mouth, nose, ears
          and genitals.
          (b) Amas Hadiansyah was arrested at the beginning of 1992 in Bandung in
          connection with an armed robbery. As a result of being beaten by three
          policemen he reportedly lost the sight in one eye.
          325. The Special Rapporteur continued to receive information about the use of
          torture in East Timor. Military and police officials were reported to have
          tortured or ill-treated some of the suspected government opponents detained in
          November 1992 and afterwards. He was also informed of the case of Agostinho
          Pereira, detained in August 1992 at Dili airport by security forces who
          suspected that he was a member of a pro-independence group. According to the
          reports, he was beaten on the spot by soldiers until his face was swollen and
          blood came from his ears.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 67
          Urgent appeals
          326. The Special Rapporteur sent three urgent appeals to the Government on
          behalf of the people mentioned below, regarding whom fears were expressed that
          they might be subjected to torture while in detention. The dates on which the
          appeals were transmitted appear in parentheses at the end of the corresponding
          summaries.
          327. Rui” Los Palos”, a student in Singaraja, Bali, was reportedly arrested
          together with two other university students in Dili on 14 May 1993 by members
          of the military. (27 May 1993)
          328. Martinho Rodrigues Pereira, a former East Timorese prisoner, was
          reportedly arrested on 5 July 1993 in Djakarta by members of the military
          intelligence forces under suspicion of assisting politically active
          East Timorese living in Djakarta. It was also reported that two other
          persons had been arrested in the same circumstances and that they all were
          being held incommunicado. (27 August 1993)
          329. Fausto da Silva, Gil Lemos, Julio X da Silva, Sebastiao Pedro da Silva,
          Cristiano Araujo, Augusto Pachao Monteiro, Tinoco, Bento Pereira, Isac da
          Costa, Francisco da Silva, Benjamin Madeira, Alberto Carvalho, Hermenegildo
          Carvalho, Tiago de Jesus, Alberto Alves, Virgilio Augusto, TomIs da Costa,
          Olimpio Castro, JanuIrio de Jesus, José de Jesus, Pedro Patima, JanuIrio alias
          Aleixo, Casimiro Andrade, Jovito das Dores, Rosalino Pereira, Gustavo
          Sarmento, Jmnio Lobato, Simplicio Madeira, Antonio Baptista, Fernando Tilman,
          José S. Bento, Lito da Costa, Joaquim Sarmento, Arilbal Magno, Danociano dos
          MIrtires, José Manuel, Francisco AtanIsio, Octaviano dos Santos, Aleixo de
          Jesus Tilman, Gelito Freitas da Silva, Ambrôsio da Costa Sarmento, Domingos
          Dontel Faria, Constmncio Manuel Alves, Narcisio Madeira Neves, Leônio Maria
          das Dores, EufrIsio G. Nieves, Atanasio P. Gaspar, Celestino Morato da Cunha
          and Claudio Cortinhal were, according to the reports, among a larger group of
          students who were arrested by Indonesian security forces in Dili, East Timor,
          in advance of a visit to the territory by members of the United States
          Congress on 1 and 2 September 1993. No indication had allegedly been given by
          the authorities about their place of detention despite repeated requests by
          the families. (13 September 1993)
          330. The Special Rapporteur also made an appeal, under Commission
          resolution 1993/64, on behalf of Gabriella Lopes de Cruz Pinto, the wife of
          Constancio Pinto, an East Timorese to whom the Government's attention had been
          called on 29 April 1991 because of allegations received according to which he
          had been subjected to torture in January 1991. Mr. Pinto made a statement
          before the Commission on Human Rights in March 1993 and expressed his fear
          that by making a public statement he might be putting the lives of his wife
          and family, residing in Dili, in danger. According to the information
          received, Gabriella Lopes was arrested on 12 April and taken to a military
          intelligence base, Wisma Senopati II, for interrogation about her husband's
          activities. After being interrogated she was released, but on 13 April she
          was reportedly visited a number of times by military intelligence personnel
          and again taken away for questioning. This appeal was transmitted to the
          Government on 21 April 1993.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 68
          331. On 16 June 1993 the Government replied that Mr. Pinto's wife had never
          been arrested, detained, nor subjected to any harassment. She continued to
          live at her residence where she could be freely contacted, even by the foreign
          press. The Indonesian Government had absolutely no reason for detaining
          persons such as Mrs. Pinto who had not been accused of any violations of law.
          In April 1993 Mr. Amos Wako, the personal envoy of the Secretary-General of
          the United Nations, visited and talked with a number of persons in East Timor,
          including detainees. He conferred with them privately so that they would
          have an opportunity to express their views and opinions freely and without
          fear.
          Follow-up to the recommendations included in the report on the visit to the
          country carried out by the Special Rapporteur in November 1991
          332. On 4 September 1992 the Special Rapporteur sent a letter to the
          Government reminding it of the recommendations included in the report on the
          visit carried out to the country by his predecessor and requesting information
          about any steps taken to implement those recommendations. On 26 January 1993
          a reply was received which pointed out to the following measures taken by the
          Government in the field of human rights:
          (a) General
          333. On 21 and 22 January 1991, in cooperation with the United Nations Centre
          for Human Rights, a national workshop on human rights was held at Jakarta,
          during which structural approaches to the intensification of national
          activities in the promotion and protection of human rights were outlined.
          334. Among the decisions adopted at the workshop was the establishment of an
          inter-agency permanent committee on human rights. This committee, which was
          established on 22 February 1991, comprises representatives from different
          government agencies and departments, as well as members of important national
          non-governmental organizations. Three working groups were also created whose
          main respective tasks were to deal with: the question of Indonesia's
          accession to international human rights instruments; national policies on
          human rights, including the preparations for the establishment of a national
          commission on human rights; participation in international human rights
          conferences. To date the committee and the three working groups have
          conducted several meetings. Meanwhile, the Indonesian House of
          Representatives has established its own Commission on Human Rights.
          335. Among the issues discussed at a meeting of the Permanent Committee held
          on 2 November 1992 was the possibility of establishing technical cooperation
          with the Centre for Human Rights, in particular in the areas of training, such
          as for law enforcement officials, judges and lawyers, the dissemination of
          information and other information programmes. In addition, arrangements were
          made for setting up a curriculum on the study of human rights at university
          level and the establishment of a library on human rights materials.
          336. The Committee was also responsible for the preparation of the Workshop
          for the Asian and Pacific Region on Human Rights Issues, held at Jakarta from
          26 to 28 January 1993.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 69
          (b) On specific issues
          1. Development of Indonesian law
          337. In the Fifth Five-Year Development Plan (REPELITA V) the development of
          Indonesian law is being implemented through a number of policies and measures
          covering the establishment of new regulations, improvement of the people's
          awareness of the law, law enforcement, the guidance of the judiciary, the
          guidance of probation institutions, legal services, the education and training
          of legal personnel and the establishment of administration and supervision.
          338. In the framework of increasing the people's awareness of the law, direct
          and indirect activities concerning legal guidance, legal assistance and legal
          consultations, have been carried out. Activities to provide legal guidance
          have been executed through “Public prosecutor entering the villages” and
          “Judges Entering the Villages” programmes, the provision of legal guidance to
          urban communities, the establishment of integrated guidance posts located in
          the offices of local authorities and the creation of law-conscious families.
          In addition, to support the equal provision of legal aid, starting from the
          Third Five-Year Development Plan, legal aid has been provided, free of charge,
          for the low-income sector of the community.
          339. In order to improve the effectiveness and efficiency of legal personnel,
          education and training activities have been improved and increased.
          Education and upgrading activities on the various aspects of the judiciary,
          such as the technical officers of the law, judges, clerks of the courts,
          bailiffs as well as immigration and probation officers are still being carried
          out. Training programmes have also been conducted and public prosecutors have
          attended education courses.
          2. On offences committed by members of the security apparatus
          340. In the case of offences committed by members of the security apparatus,
          the Government of Indonesia is guided by provisions of the law concerning:
          the prosecution of a member of the security apparatus who violates the law by
          a civil court or military tribunal, or the imposition of administrative
          sanctions; the non-validity of information obtained through torture (art. 117,
          Code of Criminal Procedure) ; remedies and compensation to the victim in
          accordance with sections XII and XIII of the Code of Criminal Procedure; the
          right of a victim to file a complaint through a legal aid foundation.
          Disciplinary action taken and the punishment imposed by the courts are widely
          published in the media.
          341. With regard to the police force, a disciplinary campaign is being
          conducted whereby an assessment rating of “excellent”, “good” or “poor” is
          given to each member. In the case of a poor rating, the member concerned will
          be put through a one-month retraining programme and given a psychological test
          to judge whether he is prone to violence and/or fit to be in possession of a
          gun. A poor retraining result might lead to discharge from the force after
          the person concerned has first been given the chance to resign voluntarily.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 70
          342. On 13 September 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent another letter to the
          Government drawing its attention inter alia to Commission on Human Rights
          resolution 1993/97 entitled “Situation in East Timor”, in paragraph 8 of which
          the Commission encouraged once again the Indonesian authorities to take the
          necessary steps to implement the recommendations presented by the
          Special Rapporteur on the question of torture in the report he had submitted
          following his visit to Indonesia and East Timor and to keep the Special
          Rapporteur informed of the progress made towards their implementation. On
          this basis the Special Rapporteur addressed the following questions to the
          Government:
          (a) According to the Government's letter of 26 January 1993, one of the
          tasks of the Inter-agency Permanent Committee on Human Rights is to study the
          question of Indonesia's accession to international human rights instruments.
          Has the Committee come to any conclusion or made a particular recommendation
          in this regard?
          (b) Has the drafting of the new Criminal Code been completed? Does the
          draft text contain any provision recognizing torture as a criminal offence?
          If so, what penalty is provided for in respect to this offence?
          (c) Have any steps been taken in order to revise or repeal the
          Jthti-Subversion Law?
          (d) Have any steps been taken to establish a system of regular visits
          to all places of detention, including police stations, by an independent
          authority?
          (e) Has any authority or agency independent of the security forces and
          law enforcement authorities been given powers to investigate allegations of
          human rights violations, including torture?
          (f) Have any measures been envisaged in order to ensure a greater
          involvement of the public prosecutors in criminal investigation?
          (g) Would it be possible to obtain information about the number and
          identity of members of the armed forces and the police found guilty of
          committing or condoning torture during the last two years, together with an
          indication of the measures taken against them? Were they prosecuted by a
          military or by a civilian court?
          (h) Have any measures been adopted to ensure that statements extracted
          under torture are not admitted as evidence in legal proceedings?
          (i) Would it be possible to obtain information about decisions in which
          a court eventually concluded that a detainee's statement had been obtained
          under torture? Did the victim obtain any kind of compensation?
          (j) With a view to ensuring that all detainees have access to a lawyer,
          have any measures been envisaged in the long or short term in order to
          increase the number of defence lawyers in the country?
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 71
          343. In the same letter the Special Rapporteur referred to paragraph 9 of
          resolution 1993/97, in which the Commission urged the Government of Indonesia
          to invite inter alia the Special Rapporteur on the question of torture to
          visit East Timor and to facilitate the discharge of his mandate.
          Iran (Islamic Republic of)
          Information transmitted to the Government
          344. By letter dated 18 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur brought to
          the attention of the Government the case of Ali-Akbar Ghorbani (alias
          Mansour Amini) , a political refugee in France, who was abducted in Turkey,
          reportedly by agents of the Iranian Government, on 4 June 1992. His body was
          found in an Istanbul suburb on 29 June 1992. According to reports received,
          he had been severely tortured before being killed; parts of his body had been
          cut into pieces, he had been castrated, his finger nails had been pulled out
          and he had been strangled with an electrical cord.
          345. The Special Rapporteur also informed the Government that he had received
          reports according to which torture of prisoners held for political reasons, in
          order to obtain information or to extract confessions remain common throughout
          the country. Methods include beating the prisoner with a thick cable,
          electric shocks, mock executions (by hanging) and burning with cigarettes.
          The Special Rapporteur also expressed concern about the use of corporal
          punishment, such as amputation and flogging, which seem to be widespread in
          the country.
          346. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur reminded the Government of
          a number of cases transmitted in 1992 regarding which no reply had been
          received.
          Urgent appeals
          347. The Special Rapporteur addressed an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 15 November 1993 regarding Ghobad Veysi, Ali Soleimani, Jalal Mohammad-
          Rezaie, Abbas Feyzi and Moussa Maleki, alleged members of an illegal Kurdish
          political organization known as “Komala”. According to the reports, they
          were arrested by members of the Iranian Armed Forces near Sanandaj around
          21 October 1993 and were believed to be held incommunicado in this city.
          Fears had been expressed that they might be subjected to torture.
          Iraq
          Information transmitted to the Government
          348. By letter dated 10 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received reports containing the names of the following
          persons alleged to have died in detention as a result of torture:
          (a) Ali Sa'eed Al-Derbash, from Al-Musharah, died in June 1993 at the
          Al -Radhwania prison;
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 72
          (b) Mohammad Salih, from Al-Kahia, died in March 1993 at the
          Al -Radhwania prison;
          (c) Jaffar Lafta Al-A'Iwai, a resident of Al-Majediah in Al-Amarah; his
          corpse was handed over to his family on 7 July 1993;
          (d) Attisla Ahmet Nimet was among a group of nine Turkmen arrested in
          September 1992 by policemen and later executed. His corpse, which allegedly
          bore marks of torture (an eye had been extracted) , was handed over to his
          family on 15 July 1993.
          Information received from the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          349. On 11 December 1992 the Government replied to an urgent appeal
          transmitted on 3 December 1992 regarding widespread arrests which allegedly
          took place in southern Iraq in September and October 1992, in particular in
          Misan province.
          350. According to the Government, the allegations received by the Special
          Rapporteur to the effect that the Iraqi authorities had ordered the local
          population of the marsh region in southern Iraq to evacuate that region, were
          false and totally unfounded. In that connection, reference should be made to
          the letter of 6 August 1992 from the Minister for Foreign Affairs, addressed
          to the President of the Security Council, which gave full details and refuted
          all the allegations made in that regard. The allegations that military units
          had launched ground attacks and engaged in arbitrary arrests and torture in
          the village of al-Salem near al-Mudaina in the governorate of Basra in the
          month of September, and that several thousand persons were detained in the
          governorate of Misan and others at the headquarters of the Fourth Army Corps
          in the town of Amara, and that some of them had been forcibly transferred to
          Baghdad, were likewise totally inaccurate and biased and had been circulated
          by well-known politically motivated bodies hostile to Iraq. All Iraqi
          citizens in the marsh region in southern Iraq were protected and cared for in
          the same way as the rest of the population. The allegations received were not
          new and were part of the campaign that the Iranian regime was launching
          against Iraq and the Iraqi people in an attempt to conceal the policy of
          interference in its internal affairs which Iran was pursuing.
          Information submitted by the Government in connection with Commission
          resolution 1993/4 8
          351. In pursuance of Commission resolution 1993/48, the Government of Iraq
          sent a note verbale on 29 July 1993 in which it reported on violence and
          terrorist acts allegedly committed by armed Kurdish groups in the north and
          by Iranian armed groups reportedly collaborating with “Iraqi outlaws and
          deserters” in the south of the country. It was reported that in the north,
          especially after the Government had withdrawn from this region following the
          uprisings, armed Kurdish groups had taken control of the economic, civil and
          public institutions, confiscating their equipment. According to this
          information, they had also confiscated machinery from dams, thereby paralysing
          irrigation projects, and had harassed the population and impeded their
          movement. Terrorist activities reportedly included the detonation of car
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 73
          bombs and the throwing of grenades. With regard to the situation in the
          south, the Government reported that armed groups had killed numerous officials
          and civilians, destroyed and looted economic and civil institutions, as well
          as food warehouses, and circulated false banknotes in the country.
          Israel
          Information transmitted to the Government
          352. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received information according to which the practice of
          torture in military interrogation centres still persisted. Methods included
          severe beating, hooding, prolonged handcuffing, tying in painful positions,
          confinement in tiny and airless spaces, electric shocks, sleep deprivation,
          exposure to extreme temperatures and prolonged solitary confinement.
          353. Another prevailing complaint concerned the lack of access to medical
          facilities. Detainees who are in need of physical or mental health-care
          treatment are often denied access to doctors or are not allowed to receive
          medication. In addition, Israeli physicians and other medical personnel have
          allegedly been involved in certifying detainees' fitness to undergo some of
          the methods of interrogation reportedly used by the Israeli authorities; in
          examining and providing treatment to victims before allowing them to be
          returned to interrogation; and in covering up abuses by interrogators. The
          following individual cases were reported:
          (a) Samir Omar, a 17-year-old from al-Shati' refugee camp in the
          Gaza Strip, died on 31 May 1992. He had been arrested on 13 May and detained
          in the interrogation section of Gaza central prison until 21 May. Upon
          release, he reportedly stated that during interrogation he had been hooded,
          kept in a very cold cell, deprived of food and forced to sit on a chair for
          four days. He also said that he had been beaten all over his body, including
          his genitals, and hit on the head with a hammer.
          (b) Mustafa Mahmud Mustafa ‘Abd al-Hadi Barakat, a resident of the
          West Bank village of Anabta, died on 4 August 1992 in the Tulkarm detention
          centre, about 36 hours after his arrest on 3 August. He reportedly died
          from an asthma attack brought about by the conditions of detention and
          interrogation, in particular the use of hooding. He was allegedly subjected
          to severe mistreatment, which led to his first attack of asthma in eight
          years.
          (c) Ayman Sa'id Hasan Nassar was arrested on 20 March 1993 during a
          military operation in Deir al-Balah refugee camp in Gaza. He and three others
          were reportedly taken to the beach nearby, where they were allegedly kicked
          and beaten on the face and chest. Subsequently, they were taken to Ashkelon
          prison, where they were reportedly placed in solitary confinement and
          subjected to further beatings, prolonged shackling, hooding with dirty sacks
          and sleep deprivation, and prevented from using the toilet for several days.
          On 23 March Ayman Nassar was admitted to the intensive care unit in Barzalai
          hospital suffering from acute respiratory distress syndrome, but he died
          on 2 April.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 74
          (d) Husniyeh Abdel Qader, from the Balata refugee camp, was arrested on
          9 April 1992. She was detained at the Kishon detention centre, where she was
          held in solitary confinement with her hands cuffed behind her back and her
          head in a dirty bag during the first four days of her detention. She was
          released on 14 September 1992.
          (e) Hassan Badr ‘Abdallah Zubeidi, from ‘Anabta, Tulkarem district, was
          arrested on 25 September 1992 and during 33 days detained at Tulkarm and Far'a
          prisons. Since his release, Mr. Zubeidi, who had been in perfect health
          before his arrest, was said to suffer from “acute catatonia”, a mental
          disorder associated with a near total lack of response or association with
          the outside world.
          (f) Youssef Farahat, from the Nusseirat refugee camp, was arrested on
          24 January 1992 and taken to the Gaza central prison. He was reportedly
          tortured, in particular by being placed in a cell called “the refrigerator”
          (a small and totally dark cell into which cold air is pumped through a single
          opening in the ceiling) for 10 to 15 hours a day.
          (g) Ghazi Abdul Rahim Omar, a resident of the village of Algason, was
          arrested on 25 September 1992 and taken to the Tulkarm detention centre.
          On 3 November, his family was informed that Ghazi Omar was hospitalized at
          Ha'emek hospital in a serious condition because of a kidney problem, which
          seemed to have been caused by severe beatings.
          (h) Nader Raji Qumsieh was arrested between 3 and 4 May 1993 at his home
          in Beit Sahur, in the West Bank, and taken to a military detention centre in
          Bethlehem. He remained in solitary confinement until 6 May, when he was
          reportedly moved to the Dhahiriyyah detention centre for interrogation. He
          sustained an injury to his scrotum while under interrogation, as was evident
          from his medical records. One medical report claimed that Nader Qumsieh said
          he had fallen downstairs, whereas he had repeatedly stated that he had been
          injured in Dhahiriyyah as a result of torture.
          354. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur reminded the Government of a
          number of cases transmitted in 1992 regarding which no reply had been
          received.
          Urgent appeals
          355. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 16 July 1993 on behalf of Muhammad Ya'qub ‘Abd al-Wader al-Nubani, a
          Palestinian from the village of Mazari' al-Nubani near Ramallah, who was
          reportedly arrested by Israeli forces in the town of Bir Zeit on 22 April 1993
          and taken to the Ramallah prison. On 9 June 1993, he was said to have stated
          in an affidavit that he had been kept hooded for long periods, tied by the
          hands and feet and kept in a painful position on a low chair, and deprived of
          sleep. Fears were expressed that he might continue to be subjected to this
          kind of treatment.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 75
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          356. On 20 January 1993 the Government transmitted information on the case of
          I'taf Daoud Hussein I'Elian who, according to the information received by the
          Special Rapporteur, had been kept in an isolation cell at the Tel Mund central
          prison for three and a half years and denied medical care. The Government
          stated that neither physical punishment nor torture of any kind had been
          inflicted upon Ms. I'Elian at any time during her detention in the Prisons
          Service facility. Ms. I'Elian, a member of the terrorist organization known
          as the Islamic Jihad (Islamic Holy War) , had refused to observe the rules and
          regulations governing the conduct of prison inmates. Nevertheless, there was
          no basis for the reports that she had been held in solitary confinement for
          three and a half years, or for any similarly extended period. In a periodic
          medical visit, Prisons Service doctors had diagnosed a deviated nasal septum
          and recommended an operation be carried out in the near future at a suitable
          hospital (Ms. I'Elian had undergone an earlier nasal operation about two years
          previously) . Ms. I'Elian at one point proclaimed a hunger strike. However,
          daily medical examinations, which were customary in such cases, revealed the
          fact of her being fed in secret by her inmate colleagues. At this point the
          prisoner terminated her “hunger strike”
          357. With regard to the code of medical ethics, the Government quoted
          the report issued by the Israeli Medical Association (No. 29962
          of 13 September 1992)
          (a) Representatives of the International Committee of the Red Cross
          regularly visit the prison and there have been no specific complaints;
          (b) Ten inmates (among them Ms. I'Elian) agreed to be examined by a
          physician member of the Israeli Medical Association (not in the presence of
          the prison's medical team) . In Ms. I'Elian's case, there were no medical
          findings other than a deviated septum.
          (c) In its report, the Israeli Medical Association also noted the
          general conditions prevailing in the prison: the inmates were accommodated in
          rooms of six beds; the food was identical to that served to women-soldiers in
          the Israeli Defence Forces; and every room was equipped with a television set.
          The prison had a library providing inmates with reading material, as well as
          study material for those inmates wishing to prepare for academic examinations.
          Observations
          358. The Special Rapporteur notes that in the past two years the Government
          has so far only responded to one case, namely, one that was the basis of an
          urgent appeal. The Special Rapporteur is aware of the difficulties faced by
          the security forces during the prolonged occupation. He hopes recent
          political developments will materially affect the situation. Nevertheless, he
          is concerned about the numerous reports of ill-treatment frequently amounting
          to torture, as well as allegations of medical personnel involvement in
          procedures requiring them to certify prisoners as fit for interrogation where
          such treatment is used.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 76
          Ital y
          Information transmitted to the Government
          359. By letter dated 29 October 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information indicating that people held in the
          custody of law enforcement agents and prison guards were sometimes subjected
          to torture and ill-treatment. The most common forms alleged were repeated
          kicks and punches and prolonged beatings with batons, and sometimes large
          numbers of prisoners were involved. Incidents of that nature had reportedly
          taken place, in particular, in the course of 1992 and the first months
          of 1993, at the Asinara prison, Buoncammino prison (Cagliari, Sardinia)
          Canton Mombello prison (Brescia) , Gazzi prison (Messina, Sicily), Padua
          district prison, Pianosa Island prison, Poggioreale prison (Naples),
          Regina Coeli prison (Rome) and Secondigliano prison (Naples) . The
          individual cases described in the following paragraphs were transmitted
          to the Government.
          360. Ciro Esposito, an ex-drug addict, and a friend were stopped by the
          carabinieri while riding a motor-scooter in central Naples on 25 June 1992 and
          accused of stealing the vehicle. They were arrested and taken to Marianella
          carabinieri offices in Naples where, between 4.30 p.m. and their release
          at 9.30 p.m., six carabinieri reportedly beat them with bars, including an
          iron handle. On the morning of 26 June, Ciro Esposito reportedly sought
          medical treatment for his injuries at the Cardarelli hospital in Naples. The
          medical certificate issued by the hospital apparently referred to an injury to
          his left wrist and various abrasions requiring up to 10 days to heal. It was
          also alleged that the captain of the Marianella carabinieri station, together
          with a marshall said to have participated in the alleged ill-treatment, called
          at Ciro Esposito's home asking him not to proceed with a formal complaint
          about his treatment.
          361. Carmelo La Rosa, a heroin addict, appeared before the Messina Appeal
          Court, Sicily, on 24 June 1992, for a hearing of his appeal against a sentence
          which he was serving in Gazzi prison. During the hearing he reportedly
          informed the court that he was subject to severe drug withdrawal crises and
          that after each such crisis the prison guards beat him with batons. The Court
          reportedly acknowledged that there were clear signs of violent blows caused by
          a blunt instrument on his chest and shoulders and ordered that his statement
          be immediately passed to the Public Prosecutor. During the night of
          24/25 June, Carmelo La Rosa was found dead, hanging by the neck from a
          trouser-belt tied to the bars of his cell-window.
          362. Biagio Mazzara, an inmate of Padua district prison, was reportedly beaten
          in October 1992 outside the prison infirmary following an altercation with a
          guard. His lawyer reportedly lodged a formal complaint in which it was
          alleged that Biagio Mazzara had been punched, kicked, beaten with a belt
          buckle and had burning cigarettes extinguished on his forehead. The results
          of a forensic examination were reportedly consistent with the above
          allegations.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 77
          Jordan
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          363. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information regarding Husayn al-Jidi,
          Fu'ad Shrifat, Easel al-Zaghlul and Sulayman al-Zuyud, reportedly arrested
          on 20 April 1993 under accusation of membership of the illegal Liberation
          Party in Jordan (LPJ) and of participation in a plot to assassinate
          King Hussein of Jordan. They were first reportedly taken to the General
          Intelligence Department (GID) in Amman; however, the security authorities were
          said to have initially denied holding them. None of them, allegedly, were
          allowed access to a lawyer, and family visits were only allowed in mid-August,
          when they were being held in Zarga military prison awaiting trial. After
          these visits the relatives reported that the detainees had been subjected
          to torture while held at GID and that they still bore the marks of beatings.
          364. In a letter dated 8 September 1993 the Government strongly denied the
          above allegations and stated that the detainees had been accorded the full
          protection of due process of law, including legal counsel and defence in
          accordance with judicial procedures and standards guaranteed by the
          Constitution. The cases were still under judicial investigation and the
          trial had been scheduled to take place on 9 September 1993. It would be
          open to the press and the general public, including the relatives of the
          detainees.
          365. In the light of the reply provided by the Government, the source informed
          the Special Rapporteur that in October all detainees had retracted their
          confessions in court, saying they had been extracted under torture. They had
          stated that when held in GID Headquarters' detention centre in Amman they had
          been tortured by methods that included falaga and threats of sexual assault.
          One of them, Husayn al-Jidi, had sustained an injury over his left eyebrow
          requiring sutures, which he said was caused by beatings, while the prosecutor
          suggested it was the result of an attempt at suicide by banging his head
          against a cell door. The source also reported that the Court had not allowed
          the detainees to be examined by doctors of their choice, as their defence
          lawyers had requested, only by doctors chosen through the Minister of Health.
          The examinations had not been conducted until the end of September and their
          results were being debated.
          Kenya
          Urgent appeals
          366. On 6 December 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent un urgent appeal to the
          Government concerning the state of health of Geoffrey Kuria Kariuki, arrested
          around 6 November 1993 during a police operation in Nakuru and taken to Nakuru
          prison. According to the reports, he had not received medical treatment for
          acute typhoid, despite a court order dated 16 November 1993 requiring him to
          be taken to hospital.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 78
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          367. On 12 November 1992 the Special Rapporteur sent a letter to the
          Government regarding the alleged beating in March 1992 of Wangari Maathai and
          other women hunger strikers. On 31 March 1993 the Government replied that the
          circumstances surrounding the alleged beating had been the subject of much
          controversy and disinformation. When these persons first decided to camp at
          tJhuru Park, the Government was anxious to establish communication with them
          with a view to finding a solution to their grievances. Towards this end, the
          Attorney-General held a meeting with them on 28 February 1992 and promised to
          look into their complaints.
          368. Notwithstanding their assurance to the Government that their protest
          would be peaceful, the opposition began to hold unlicensed public meetings at
          the venue of the mothers' strike and illegal processions and demonstrations in
          and around the area. Moreover, soon thereafter, some elements in the environs
          of the scene of the hunger strike had begun to stone passing motorists and to
          obstruct traffic. As a result of these activities the police had been
          instructed to move in to restore law and order. It was in furtherance of this
          objective that the striking mothers and those at the scene of the strike and
          its surroundings had been removed. In the course of this operation the police
          and members of the public had been stoned by some elements who had taken over
          the movement. The police had responded to these incidents by using force
          which was commensurate with the situation. In the light of the experience at
          tJhuru Park the striking mothers had moved to the nearby Cathedral where they
          continued their strike. In view of the steps taken by the Government to meet
          their grievances the strike had been called off by late 1992.
          369. By letter dated 1 April 1993 the Government added to its reply that
          neither Wangari Maathai nor the other striking mothers who were alleged to
          have been beaten had made any formal complaint to the authorities and
          therefore no investigations into the matter could have been carried out.
          Malawi
          Information transmitted to the Government
          370. By letter dated 9 June 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of reports he had received about arrests and short-term
          imprisonment of supporters of the movement for a multi-party system that
          allegedly occurred in 1992. The conditions of imprisonment of those arrested
          were reported to be exceptionally poor. The main prisons to which they were
          taken, Chichiri in Blantyre and Maula in Lilongwe, were reportedly those with
          the worst conditions and the most severe overcrowding in the country.
          Prisoners were forced to spend the night standing crammed together because
          there was not even space for them to sit. Many of those arrested were alleged
          to have been subjected to severe beatings, electric shocks and sexual abuse.
          371. It was also reported that assault and torture were crimes under Malawi's
          Penal Code and unlawful under Malawi's civil law, entitling the victim to sue
          for damages. However, no prosecution or civil action for assault or torture
          was known to have taken place. The following individual cases were reported:
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 79
          (a) Sophia Nkosana was arrested on about 17 April 1992 and held for
          about five days before being released without charge. While she was in
          custody at police headquarters in Lilongwe she was reported to have been
          stripped naked, beaten, poked with a cattle prod and placed in a cell smeared
          with excrement.
          (b) Samuel Mkandawire and Kenneth Govati, student union officials,
          were arrested in Blantyre on 17 March 1992. They were among a group of
          approximately 75 students arrested by the police at the polytechnic in
          response to a demonstration and taken to Chichiri prison and Chilomoni and
          Ndirande police posts, where they were beaten. Samuel Mkandawire and
          Kenneth Govati were also alleged to have been tortured by having their
          genitals squeezed.
          (c) Chakufwa Chihana, Secretary General of the Southern African Trades
          Union Coordination Council (SATUCC) , was arrested on 6 April 1992 and taken to
          Mikuyu prison, a maximum security prison in Zomba. He was put in an extremely
          small cell, only the size of his body, where the window had been deliberately
          blocked off. The first night the warders put a wild cat in the cell and, for
          almost one month, he was held in leg irons.
          Malaysia
          Information transmitted to the Government on cases included in previous
          reports
          372. On 12 November 1991 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government concerning Aaron Cohen Shelton, reported to have been sentenced in
          September 1991 to life imprisonment and ordered to be whipped six times under
          Malaysia's Dangerous Drugs Act.
          373. On 5 August 1993 the Government replied that the sentence of whipping had
          been carried out on 12 December 1991. Whipping had been enforced since 1975
          under the above-mentioned Act. It should not be viewed as inhumane or
          degrading, but in relation to the seriousness and gravity of the crime
          committed against society and national security. Aaron Cohen Shelton had been
          charged with possession of heroin and found guilty after the due process of
          law as provided for by the Malaysian legal system. He had been given every
          opportunity for a fair and just hearing. The sentence was in accordance and
          consistent with a law passed by the Parliament freely elected by the people of
          the country.
          374. On 21 August 1992 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of a group of 43 Acehnese asylum-seekers who were
          occupying the UNHCR premises in Kuala Lumpur because they had been threatened
          with being forcibly returned to Indonesia. Fears were expressed that, if this
          happened, they would be at risk of being detained upon arrival and tortured.
          375. On 5 August 1993 the Government replied that beginning in June 1991,
          several groups of Acehnese totalling 290 had landed on Malaysian shores
          claiming political asylum and refugee status. They had been detained at
          various immigration detention centres in keeping with the Malaysian laws
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 80
          governing illegal entry of aliens into the country. By August 1993, 162 of
          those detained had been released and had returned to Indonesia voluntarily.
          At no time did the Government of Malaysia force them to return to their
          country. As for the rest, arrangements were being made to release them.
          Throughout their detention in Malaysia for illegal entry, the Acehnese were
          provided with all the necessary facilities, including adequate food, shelter
          and medical treatment. They were never denied or deprived of their basic
          rights.
          376. As for the 44 persons occupying the UNHCR premises in Kuala Lumpur,
          consultations were taking place between the relevant authorities with a view
          to providing those who wished to leave the camp with the opportunity to work
          temporarily in Malaysia in accordance with the relevant laws governing foreign
          workers in the country. The Malaysian Government had no intention of forcibly
          returning them to Indonesia. The fact that they were able to remain on
          the UNHCR premises for so many months, despite being regarded as illegal
          immigrants, clearly testified to the fact that at no time were they
          in danger of being forced to return to Indonesia against their free
          will.
          Mauritania
          Information received from the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          377. On 28 September 1992 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government in connection with incidents of torture reported to have taken
          place in the village of Sorimale, M'Bagne department, as a result of which
          Dia Hamath Atouman allegedly died.
          378. On 24 December 1992 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          on the night of 22 August 1992, a trader with a business in Sorimale had been
          seriously wounded and had died several hours later. An investigation had
          led to the arrest of Sarr Amadou Mamadou, also known as Alassane, and
          Diop Ismaila, Niass Yaya and M'bodj Hamidou. They had been brought before the
          Government Prosecutor and transferred to the prison at Aleg, where they were
          awaiting trial. They had access to their lawyers, to a doctor and to their
          families.
          379. The confessions made by the accused had not been obtained under torture
          and both the investigation by the Government Prosecutor's Office and the trial
          would take place in full observance of the normal rules applicable in a State
          governed by the rule of law.
          380. The death of Dia Hamath Atouman had been due to natural causes and was in
          no way connected with the above-mentioned case. He had never been questioned
          by the officials handling the investigation. No complaint had been lodged
          concerning him and, were one to be made, an official investigation would be
          undertaken and conducted in accordance with the law.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 81
          Mexico
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          381. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received reports according to which torture and
          ill-treatment continued to be practised by the judicial police during the
          initial stages of a criminal investigation as a means of extracting
          confessions from detainees. Moreover, these confessions continued to be
          accepted as evidence by the majority of courts. The most commonly used
          methods were beatings, introduction of carbonated water into the nose,
          suffocation by placing a plastic bag over the head or immersing the head in
          water, electric shocks and death threats.
          382. According to the information received, the practice of torture and
          ill-treatment was facilitated by the fact that the perpetrators were rarely
          prosecuted. Even in cases where a recommendation had been issued by the
          National Human Rights Commission, the recommendation had been ignored and the
          persons responsible had gone unpunished. Cases of indemnification of victims
          were rare, even where the authorities had recognized the existence of torture.
          383. The Special Rapporteur was also informed of the existence of a draft text
          to revise various articles of the Constitution, which called, inter alia , for
          an increase in the period of preventive detention from the 24-hour limit
          currently in force to 72 hours. According to the sources, this reform would
          represent a setback in the protection of the rights of detainees and would
          facilitate the practice of torture and ill-treatment. The individual cases
          referred to in the following paragraphs were communicated to the Government.
          384 Ruben Medina Rubio was arrested on 23 November 1989 in the town of Jalapa
          and taken to the premises of the judicial police of the Federal District
          located in Medico Militar street, Mexico City. It was reported that both at
          the time of his arrest and during his transfer he was severely beaten for
          refusing to confess his involvement in a kidnapping and homicide case. Also
          arrested was Angel Chavez Smnchez who, under torture - as corroborated by
          medical certificates and photographs - reportedly implicated Mr. Medina in the
          crimes with which he had been charged. Mr. Chavez was reported to have
          retracted his statement before the Eighth Criminal Court of the Federal
          District. According to the information received, Mr. Chavez 's original
          statement constitutes the only evidence on the basis of which Mr. Medina was
          sentenced to 37 years in prison.
          385. Manuel Manriquez San Agustin, a member of the Otomi indigenous community
          of Rancheria Piedra Blanca, Tutotepec, state of Hidalgo, was arrested without
          a warrant by members of the judicial police of the Federal District on
          2 June 1990 in Mexico City. During the four days in which he was kept
          incommunicado he was reported to have been severely beaten and subjected
          to suffocation and electric shocks. Finally, he was forced to sign a
          confession in Spanish, despite the fact that he did not understand the
          language.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 82
          386. Pablo Maria Jonathan Molinet Aguilar, an 18-year-old student, was
          arrested on 24 March 1992 at Salamanca, Guanajuato, by members of the State
          judicial police. He was reported to have been severely beaten, threatened
          with death and forced to sign a blank confession. In spite of this, the
          government procurator's office formally accused him of murder. In view of
          these circumstances, a complaint was lodged with the National Human Rights
          Commission in March 1992, which issued, one year later, a recommendation
          calling upon the authorities of the state of Guanajuto to carry out an
          investigation of the claims that Mr. Molinet was the victim of illegal
          detention and torture.
          387. The Special Rapporteur was also informed of an incident which took place
          on 29 March 1993 in the town of San Isidro el Ocotal in the municipality of
          San Cristôbal de las Casas, Chiapas, in which 13 members of the Tzotzil
          indigenous community were arrested by members of the army and accused of the
          murder of two soldiers. According to the information received, the
          above-mentioned members of the indigenous community were forced, under torture
          and without an interpreter, to confess their participation in the acts of
          which they were accused. Though upon their release without charges two days
          later all of them showed marks of the treatment to which they had been
          subjected, none of the persons responsible seem to had been prosecuted nor the
          victims indemnified.
          388. On 11 October 1993 the Government sent the Special Rapporteur a copy of
          the recommendation issued by the National Commission for Human Rights on
          12 May 1993 on the above case, according to which, the arbitrary detention of
          and the ill-treatment inflicted upon the above-mentioned members of the
          Tzotzil community by agents of the judicial police were established. It was,
          therefore, recommended that legal proceedings should be initiated against the
          latter.
          Urgent appeals
          389. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 4 May 1993 on behalf of Luis Alfonso Luz Flores and José Martin
          Escarcega Solis, reported to have been kept in incommunicado detention
          since 22 April 1993 at the treatment area of the South Remand prison,
          Mexico City. Fears were expressed that they might be subjected to torture.
          390. On 26 July 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          Luis Alfonso Luz Flores, a prisoner at the South Remand prison was classified
          on the basis of his criminal record as a persistent offender with signs of
          verbal and physical aggressiveness, poor self-control, strong criminal
          proclivities, poor social adaptability and serious anti-social tendencies. As
          for José Martin Escarcega Solis, the Government stated that he was imprisoned
          in the same cell as Luis Alfonso Luz Flores and that he was sentenced to six
          years in prison in 1991 for robbery. On 25 April 1993, 284 “Roche 2” pills
          were confiscated from the two prisoners, who admitted that the pills belonged
          to them. For this reason they were taken to the special treatment area and a
          complaint was filed with the Attorney-General's Office on 6 May 1993. Medical
          certificates dated 25 April 1993 were attached stating that EscIrcega Solis
          bore no marks of recent injuries, whereas Luz Flores had a light scar on the
          left shoulder.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 83
          391. Another urgent appeal was transmitted to the Government on 19 May 1993
          regarding Olga Torres Hernmndez, Roberto Palacios Smnchez, Manuel Escalante
          Magos, Alicia Enriqueta Altamirano Jacinto, Froylan Martinez Chagoya, Cirilo
          Hernmndez Rubio and Juan Gonzalez Hernmndez. According to the reports, they
          were arrested on 16 May 1993 while demonstrating in Mexico City in support of
          a hunger strike by prisoners of the Reclusorio Preventivo Norte. Fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture while held in incommunicado
          detention.
          392. With respect to this case, the Government informed the Special Rapporteur
          that on 17 May 1993 some 30 people had visited the office of the National
          Commission for Human Rights to express their concern at the fact that a group
          of citizens had been evicted, apparently by personnel from the Secretariat
          General for Highways and Road Safety, from the place in which they were
          conducting a demonstration and hunger strike, and that their whereabouts were
          unknown. Subsequently, the Secretary-General for Highways and Road Safety had
          informed the National Commission that Mr. Torres Hernmndez, Mr. Palacio
          Smnchez, Mr. Escalante Magos and Mr. Altamirano Jacinto had been freed that
          afternoon, and that they had been taken to the Cuauhtémoc police station
          because they had committed administrative offences. This information had been
          corroborated by the complainants on 18 May 1993. The latter had also informed
          the National Commission on 3 June 1993 that the problem of the hunger strike
          had been solved two weeks previously.
          393. The Government also informed the Special Rapporteur that in the interview
          with the citizens who sought the help of the National Commission for Human
          Rights in determining the whereabouts of their relations and friends, it had
          been established that they had contacted the National Commission not in order
          to lodge a complaint, but to request urgent assistance. They had been
          informed that if they wished to lodge a complaint concerning the violation of
          human rights, they should do so by reporting specific facts and indicating
          their wish that those facts should be investigated. The citizens had said
          that if they decided to lodge a complaint, they would do so at a later date.
          As yet they had not done so.
          Observations
          394. The Special Rapporteur notes the conclusions and recommendations of the
          Committee against Torture adopted after its consideration of Mexico's periodic
          report under the Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or
          Degrading Treatment or Punishment (A/48/44, paras. 226-229) . He also notes
          with appreciation the seriousness with which the National Human Rights
          Commission appears to have considered complaints it has received. In view, in
          particular, of the concern of the Committee against Torture about the small
          number of torturers who have been punished, the Special Rapporteur would
          appreciate learning what official action has been taken in cases where the
          National Human Rights Commission has recommended official investigation and/or
          legal proceedings.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 84
          Morocco
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          395. On 5 March 1993 the Government transmitted information with respect to
          the case of Driss Touati, reported to have died in April 1991 a few hours
          after being taken to the Rachidiya police station. According to the reply,
          Mr. Touati was arrested on 18 April 1991, when evidence was found of his
          involvement in statutory offences of grand larceny, so that he could be
          questioned by criminal investigation officers. He committed suicide on
          19 April 1991.
          396. During the investigation into the circumstances of his death, the Public
          Prosecutor at Rashidiya viewed the body, which was also examined by the chief
          medical officer at Moulay Ali al-Sharif hospital in the same town. In
          addition to the investigations, the Public Prosecutor ordered an autopsy of
          the body, which confirmed that death resulted from suicide without any
          indication of violence. The Public Prosecutor decided to have a second
          autopsy performed by a committee consisting of the district medical officer
          at Rashidiya and two physicians. The results were consistent with the
          first autopsy report. In the light of the findings, and in view of the
          lack of any criminal evidence indicating that death resulted from murder,
          a complaint was filed against persons unknown and the matter was referred
          for investigation.
          397. On the same date, the Government replied also to the case of the Spanish
          national Samir Alsadi Jassin, alleged to have been severely beaten by State
          security police at Tangiers on 31 December 1989. According to the reply,
          officials at the Ministry of Justice contacted the Public Prosecutor at
          Tangier Appeal Court and the Department of Prisons and a search was made for
          the file of the person concerned, for judgements handed down against him and
          for information as to whether he was in a Moroccan prison. In spite of these
          endeavours, no reference to any person bearing this name was found.
          398. The Government also informed the Special Rapporteur that the Department
          of Public Prosecutions was legally empowered to monitor cases in which persons
          were held in police custody and to make inspection visits to police stations
          in order to interview persons held in custody and ascertain the reasons for
          their detention, as well as the duration and conditions of their detention.
          The public prosecutors submitted monthly reports to the Ministry of Justice on
          their observations during those visits. The role of the Ministry of Justice
          was to prevent and punish any arbitrary or abusive act likely to prejudice the
          freedoms or property of individuals or groups. By virtue of the coordination
          and cooperation among the various authorities responsible for investigation,
          prosecution and judgement, the desired results had been achieved within the
          framework of national legislation and the principles set forth in human rights
          instruments. This was clearly evident from the cases that had been referred
          to the courts in connection with arbitrary acts on the part of police officers
          or local authorities.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 85
          Myanmar
          Information transmitted to the Government
          399. By letter dated 3 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which persons
          arrested for political reasons were frequently subjected to torture and
          ill-treatment, particularly during interrogation, in the initial phases of
          detention. However, prisoners were also said to be beaten and deprived of
          food and water if they protested against the conditions of their detention,
          which seemed to be extremely poor. Thus, Mr. Aye Lwin, aged 38, a prisoner at
          Insein prison, reportedly died from internal injuries sustained in early
          December 1992 after being severely beaten by a prison official. Although he
          was vomiting blood, he received no medical care and died in his cell. He was
          also reported to have been badly beaten during a hunger strike at Insein
          prison in 1990, after which time his health reportedly deteriorated.
          400. The Special Rapporteur was also informed of the case of Mi Htaw, from Win
          Pa Toke village in Thanbyuzayat township, Mon state. She reportedly went to
          visit her husband, Nai Sein Aung Kyi, who had been arrested by members of the
          State Law and Order Restoration Council (SLORC) Infantry Battalion No. 31 for
          having contacts with the New Mon State Party. It was alleged that when she
          arrived there, she was repeatedly raped in front of her husband and he was
          severely beaten, as a result of which his left hand was broken.
          401. Information was also received according to which porters and unpaid
          labourers who were arbitrarily seized by the armed forces ( tatmadaw ) were
          often ill-treated or tortured and denied adequate food and medical treatment,
          despite the fact that they frequently fell ill owing to the working
          conditions. Thus, Maung Nyan Pwa, aged 24, and his father, U Aung Them,
          were reportedly arrested on 10 January 1993 together with about 100 men on the
          Zabu Aye boat, in the middle of Jine river, Kawkareik township, by members of
          Infantry Battalion No. 97. They were taken to the base of Light Infantry
          Battalion No. 201 in Pa-an and were subsequently transferred to the base of
          Light Infantry Battalion No. 210 in Hlaing Bwe. Starting in Hlaing Bwe, they
          were allegedly forced to carry baskets, each of which weighted 50 kilos. When
          they could no longer carry them, they were reportedly beaten and not fed at
          all as a punishment. Maung Nyan Pwa was allegedly beaten with bamboo sticks
          and his right eyeball and eyelid were smashed. His father was beaten to death
          with rifle butts.
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          402. On 12 August 1992 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of Maung Nay Yein Kyaw, Maung Tun Tun, Maung Naing Naing,
          Maung Soe Naing, U Tin Tun, U Tun Shein and U Swe Tint, reportedly arrested on
          8 June 1992 and interrogated at Mi-7 detention centre for several days.
          403. On 22 February 1993 the Government replied that Nay Yein Kyaw, Tun Tun,
          Naing Naing, Soe Naing, Tin Tun and Tun Sein (Shein) were sentenced to
          10 years' imprisonment on 23 September 1992 for distributing seditious
          pamphlets with an intent to disrupt the National Convention. There was no
          record of arrest of one “Swe Tint” as alleged.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 86
          Nepal
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          404. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which there had been
          several positive developments in the human rights situation in the country
          since 1989. These included the promulgation in 1990 of a new Constitution
          which prohibited torture and provided for compensation for torture victims,
          as well as the accession of Nepal to the Convention against Torture and
          Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment. Despite these
          positive changes, it was reported that torture in police custody was still
          being used, both as a means to obtain information or confessions or to
          punish prisoners held for political reasons. In addition to this, no
          official action had allegedly been taken to ensure independent and impartial
          investigations or to bring those responsible to justice. The individual
          cases described in the following paragraphs were transmitted to the
          Government.
          405. Chaitu Lama, a supporter of the Communist Party of Nepal, was arrested
          on 26 October 1992 in Bhiman village, Sindhuli district, in connection with an
          incident of murder. He was first reportedly beaten in his home by members of
          the ruling Nepali Congress Party, who tied him up and dragged him to the
          police station. Once in police custody, he was allegedly beaten repeatedly
          for two days after refusing to sign a confession to murder.
          406. On 23 November 1993 the Government replied that on 27 October 1992 a
          fight had broken out between residents of the Bhirman and Hardiya villages,
          Sindhuli district, during which two persons were killed and others injured.
          The police had carried out an investigation and filed a case with the District
          Court, which had ordered the detention of six persons, including Mr. Lama.
          Subsequently, the Court of Appeal had confirmed the detention of Mr. Lama and
          released the five others. All of them had been injured during the incident of
          27 October. It could not be confirmed that they had been tortured during the
          period of detention.
          407. Tul Bahadur Sarki was arrested by police in the same circumstances as
          Chaitu Lama. In the police station he was reportedly beaten with sticks on
          the arms, calves and soles of the feet, including while suspended upside down.
          He was also said to have been threatened with death when he refused to sign a
          statement saying that he had witnessed Chaitu Lama and another person
          committing murder.
          408. Puma Bahadur Bishwokarma, aged 61, was arrested on 1 November 1992 in
          Thalajung village, Gorkha district, on suspicion of theft and taken to Gorkha
          District Police Office (DPO), where he was said to have been beaten regularly
          with sticks and with sisnu (a plant which causes painful swellings on the
          skin) . When he was released, on 19 November, he was unable to work and died a
          few days later.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 87
          409. On 23 November 1993 the Government replied that Mr. Bishwokarma had been
          beaten by local residents before being brought to the police station. After
          inquiries were made he was allowed to return home. A few days later his
          corpse was found at the Pokharithok market in Gorkha. The post mortem report
          did not indicate beating or torture as the cause of death. However, the
          investigation was still under way.
          410. Ehim Bahadur Gurung was arrested in the same circumstances as Puma
          Bahadur. At the DPO he was reportedly boxed on the ears, pulled by the hair
          and kicked and punched in the face and abdomen. It was also alleged that he
          was forced to sit in the kukhura (chicken) position, when the victim's hands
          are loosely tied behind the back with a rope, then brought forward under the
          thighs, with the legs bent at the knee and with the head then being pushed
          forward between the legs and under the rope tying the hands. After being
          forced into this position, he was beaten for about half an hour. He was
          released 24 days later, reportedly without charge and without having appeared
          before a court, having been held incommunicado throughout his detention.
          411. Suya Bahadur Rana was arrested on 3 November 1992 in the same
          circumstances as Puma Bahadur and kept incommunicado at the DPO for 22 days.
          He was reportedly taken to the police inspector's office, forced into the
          kukhura position and beaten on the soles of the feet, ankles, thighs and arms
          on several occasions during his detention. He was also forced to jump up and
          down when his feet were painfully raw from beatings. A medical examination
          carried out after his release indicated injuries consistent with the alleged
          torture. On 23 November 1993 the Government replied that the allegations were
          false.
          412. Pratap Bishwokarma was arrested on 9 November 1992 in the same
          circumstances as the three previous persons and taken to the Gorkha DPO.
          He was allegedly beaten on the ankles with sticks, forced into the kukhura
          position and beaten on the soles of the feet for about half an hour, after
          which he was made to jump up and down on his wounded feet. At the time of his
          release, after 17 days in incommunicado detention, the police reportedly
          threatened to rearrest him if he disclosed that he had been tortured. On
          23 November 1993 the Government replied that the allegations were false.
          413. Dewan Singh Gurung was arrested on 6 November 1992, like the previous
          four persons. According to the reports, he was forced into the kukhura
          position and beaten on the soles of the feet with a rough stick. Thereafter
          he was beaten all over the body; and on the sixth day, he was stripped naked
          and beaten for 10 minutes with sisnu dipped in water. He was reportedly also
          punched in the abdomen, and made to jump up and down until he was unable to
          stand. He was released after 13 days in incommunicado detention.
          414. Sanu Maya Bishwokarma was incriminated by evidence given under torture by
          her husband Puma Bishwokarma. She was arrested on 15 November and was held
          incommunicado for one week. She was reportedly beaten during and after
          arrest, both with sticks and sisnu , and was held by the hair and lifted into
          the air.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 88
          415. Mnikala Rai was arrested by police at Buddhanilkantha, Kathmandu
          on 13 December 1992 and detained overnight. In addition to being raped,
          she was allegedly kicked and beaten until she became unconscious. A medical
          examination carried out after her release reportedly indicated injuries
          consistent with rape, including severe bruises on the chest, thighs, arms,
          face and head.
          416. On 23 November 1993 the Government replied that a deputy superintendent
          of police had been dismissed in connection with Mani Kala Rai's ill-treatment.
          However, it was not true that she had been beaten to unconsciousness while in
          police custody.
          417. The Special Rapporteur was also informed of a large number of arrests
          which allegedly took place between 25 and 28 June 1993 following
          demonstrations in Kathmandu and neighbouring towns called by the Communist
          Party of Nepal. According to the reports, over 300 people were taken into
          custody and most of them were beaten on the shins with sticks. As a result,
          some were unable to walk properly.
          418. With respect to this incident the Government replied on 23 November 1993
          that during the period of the said nationwide strike, when the demonstrators
          at the various places of the Kathmandu Valley had taken the law into their
          hands by resorting to arson, damaging public places and stoning public houses
          and vehicles, the police had had to take into custody some persons involved in
          those activities in order to make an on-the-spot investigation, to prevent the
          violence going out of control, and to protect public and private properties
          from further damage. After investigation, some of those who were found
          innocent were released the same day, and legal action under prevailing laws
          was taken against those who were found to have been involved in violent and
          destructive activities.
          Nigeria
          Urgent appeals
          419. On 23 June 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent un urgent appeal to the
          Government concerning Ken Saro-Wiwa, President of the Nigerian Association of
          Writers and the Ethnic Minority Rights Organisation of Africa, as well as
          founder of the Movement for the Survival of the Ogoni People, who was
          allegedly arrested by Rivers State Command on 21 June 1993. He was later
          transferred to the State Investigation and Intelligence Bureau in
          Port Harcourt and then moved to an unknown destination. Fears were expressed
          that he might be subjected to torture.
          Pakistan
          Information transmitted to the Government
          420. On 9 June 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the Government that he had
          received information according to which supporters of the Pakistan Democratic
          Alliance (PDA) were arrested in different parts of the country on
          17 November 1992 and on the following days, before and during a demonstration
          called by the PDA. Another mass arrest was reported to have taken place
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 89
          on 22 December 1992 in Islamabad. Several people detained for their
          participation in the protest movement were reportedly ill-treated in police
          custody. The individual cases described in the following paragraphs were
          transmitted to the Government.
          421. Salman Taseer, information secretary of the Pakistan People's Party
          (PPP) , was arrested on 18 November 1992 in Lahore. While in police custody,
          he was allegedly kept hanging upside down for several hours. Then he was
          lowered and an iron bar was allegedly put on his legs; two plainclothes
          policemen sat on the bar and rolled it over his legs. The soles of his feet
          were allegedly beaten by rubber truncheons and batons. After his release, he
          attempted to register a First Information Report against the police officers
          who had tortured him; however, the Station House Officer in Dharampura police
          station reportedly refused to register it.
          422. Sohail Malik, leader of the PPP-associated People's Student Federation,
          was arrested on 22 December 1992 in Islamabad. While in police custody he was
          allegedly kicked repeatedly with heavy boots and beaten with electric batons
          and pistol butts. A doctor of the Organisation for the Treatment and
          Rehabilitation of Torture Victims was said to have examined him afterwards and
          to have declared that he could be left impotent as a result of the torture.
          Malik Mukhtar Ahmed Awan, an ex-federal minister, and Shafqat Abbasi, an
          advocate, were also said to have been arrested in the same incident and
          subsequently subjected to torture. As a consequence, Mr. Awan had to be
          treated at the Federal Government Services Hospital and Mr. Jthassi at the
          International Medical Centre.
          423. The Special Rapporteur also received information on the case of Mohsin
          Abbas Raza, kidnapped on 15 February 1992 at Shahrah-e-Quaideen, Karachi, by
          agents of the “Rangers”, a law enforcing agency, and taken to an unknown
          detention centre, where he was allegedly subjected to severe beating,
          threatened with death and given electric shocks. He was released without
          charge a few days later.
          424. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur reminded the Government of
          allegations transmitted in 1992 regarding which no reply had been received.
          Urgent appeals
          425. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal on 28 April 1993 on behalf
          of Lisa Evelyn Rancore, an American citizen detained in a prison in Karachi.
          According to the reports Ms. Rancore, who was five months pregnant, suffered
          from dysentery, pneumonia and possibly hepatitis owing to the conditions
          prevailing in the prison. Little or no medical care and an insufficient
          quantity of food was reportedly being provided to her.
          Peru
          Information transmitted to the Government
          426. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur transmitted to the
          Government of Peru a summary of the main allegations received with regard to
          the practice of torture in the country, as well as a number of individual
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 90
          cases. In addition, the Special Rapporteur made two urgent appeals on behalf
          of persons who, according to information received, were at risk of being
          tortured.
          (a) Information transmitted to the Government with regard to the practice of
          torture in general
          427. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received ample information on the practice of torture
          in the country by security forces. In particular, it was reported that the
          new decrees on terrorism promulgated since April 1992 contained a series of
          rules which facilitated the practice of torture on persons detained on
          suspicion of terrorism, a term which was extremely vaguely defined. As a
          result of some of these rules:
          (i) The right of defence was limited by the fact that the lawyer was
          not allowed to intervene during the period of detention by the
          police before the detainee had submitted his declaration to the
          prosecutor. Preventive detention could last 15 days for
          accusations of terrorism and even more for charges of betraying
          the country.
          (ii) The police was given broad discretionary powers during preventive
          detention, such as the right to keep the detainee incommunicado.
          For charges of betraying the country, the police might set the
          time-limit for preventive detention beyond the legal limit of
          15 days, and might even decide to extend it. These powers were not
          subject to control by the jurisdictional authorities.
          (iii) The exercise of the remedy of habeas corpus was prohibited both
          during the police investigation and during the judicial
          investigation.
          428. Reports also spoke of a link between the practice of torture on the one
          hand and involuntary disappearances and summary or arbitrary executions on the
          other hand. Those who reappeared after long periods of unacknowledged
          detention and the bodies of victims of extrajudicial executions very
          frequently showed marks of physical violence. Such cases apparently occurred
          in various parts of the country, but they were most common in rural and urban
          areas where a state of emergency had been declared and where the military
          presence was therefore strong. Thus, for example, the Special Rapporteur had
          received a list of 24 students from the National University of Central Peru
          who were allegedly executed in the city of Huancayo between August and
          October 1992 and whose bodies showed marks of physical violence.
          429. According to the information received, the most commonly used methods of
          torture were beatings, suffocation, electric shocks, suspension by the arms
          for long periods of time, death threats and mutilation. Sexual abuse and rape
          were also reported to be routine in the areas under a state of emergency.
          430. In almost all cases received by the Special Rapporteur, responsibility
          for torture was attributed to members of the armed forces and police forces
          stationed in the areas under a state of emergency. However, members of the
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 91
          police serving in the rest of the country were sometimes also identified as
          perpetrators. A large proportion of cases went unreported, either because the
          victim was afraid or under threat, or because in many cases the claims were
          difficult to substantiate; indeed, in the majority of cases the kind of
          medical or legal attention which would make it possible to provide a minimum
          amount of documentation was simply not available. Procurators and judges had
          reportedly often refused to act on claims lodged by the victims, or had
          accepted as valid declarations obtained by force during the police
          investigation or detention.
          (b) Information transmitted to the Government regarding the practice of rape
          and sexual abuse against women
          431. The Special Rapporteur also received abundant information regarding the
          practice of rape and sexual abuse of which women were frequently the victims
          in connection with the campaign by security forces against insurgent groups.
          Thus, rape would seem to be used as a weapon to punish, intimidate and
          humiliate.
          432. Rape and other forms of sexual abuse were apparently sometimes combined
          with other methods of torture, such as electric shocks, during police
          interrogations. In territories under a state of emergency, on the other hand,
          rape was perpetrated within the framework of the armed conflict, in rural
          areas, without prior detention, and seemed to be used as a form of
          intimidation or punishment against civilian groups suspected of collaboration
          with insurgent groups. Incidents of this type were reported to have occurred,
          for example, at Chilcahuayco and Vilcashuammn, Ayacucho, in September 1990 and
          at San Pedro de Cachi, Ayacucho, in July 1991.
          433. It was also reported that the perpetrators were rarely prosecuted, even
          in cases which had been reported to the competent authorities. The military
          courts ignored such cases and did not place the accused at the disposal of the
          civil courts in accordance with their obligation under the law. This
          situation of impunity combined with other factors, such as the difficulty of
          providing proof or the attitude of society towards the victims meant that a
          large proportion of cases were not even reported. The following individual
          cases were communicated:
          (a) Pilar Coqchi was arrested on 23 January 1990 in 1-luamanga, Ayacucho,
          on accusation of activities connected with the Sendero Luminoso in the
          district of Belén. While in detention she was allegedly raped several times
          and was subjected to other forms of torture, such as beating, suffocation and
          hanging. Though the case was reported to the government procurator, no
          charges were filed against any members of the police, for lack of evidence.
          (b) Maria Flores Valenzuela and her 17-year-old daughter, Zunilda Pineda
          Flores, peasants from the town of Carcosi, were arrested in September 1990 by
          soldiers from Julcamarca military base in Huancavelica. Upon arrival at the
          base they were reportedly tied to a post and left in the sun for several
          hours. They were then raped by several soldiers and released on the following
          day.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 92
          (c) Virginia Huamani Garay and Luz Maria Bias Smnchez were arrested by a
          miiitary patroi on 15 August 1991 whiie waiting for a bus on a street in Lima.
          They were reportediy taken to a factory guarded by the army, raped by
          12 soidiers and warned not to report the incident.
          (d) Maria Eiena Loayza Tamayo, professor at the University of San Martin
          de Porres, was arrested on 6 February 1993 in Lima by members of the Nationai
          Directorate against Terrorism (DINCOTE) on suspicion of maintaining iinks with
          members of the Sendero Luminoso. She was kept incommunicado from 6 to
          15 February during which time she was reportediy beaten and kicked mainiy in
          the head and thorax, submerged in water to simuiate drowning, and raped
          severai times, in order to obtain her confession.
          (c) Individuai cases transmitted to the Government
          434. Higinio Quispe Perez, Vice-President of the Rurai Brigades of the area of
          San Pedro de Suicmn, Concepciôn, Huancayo, department of Junin, and Eieuterio
          Inga were arrested by soidiers on 12 Aprii 1991 and taken to Chaquicocha
          miiitary base where they were reportediy beaten in order to force them to
          provide information on terrorist activities. On the foiiowing day they were
          transferred to Chupaca base where, together with Hector Méndez Côrdoba, they
          were reported to have been severeiy beaten, with hoods over their heads and
          their hands tied behind their backs throughout.
          435. Rafaei Leandro Rodriguez Eduardo, was reportediy ui-treated on the
          premises of Ei Tambo poiice station in the department of Junin where he had
          gone to report a robbery in June 1991. He was reportediy biindfoided, beaten
          on various parts of the body inciuding the ears and genitais. His arms were
          then tied behind his back and water with detergent was sprayed in his face,
          after which he was suspended by his arms from a beam.
          436. Senobio Enriquez Vargas was arrested on 24 January 1992 at Manta,
          Huancaveiica, by, it is suspected, members of the army from the iocai miiitary
          base, and was reported to have been severeiy beaten and cut in the ieft arm
          and the chest with a knife.
          437. Juan Arnaido Saiomé Aduato was arrested in Huancayo, Junin,
          on 24 Aprii 1991 by members of the poiice and taken to the 9 de Diciembre
          poiice station where he remained untii his reiease on 10 June 1991. During
          his detention he was reportediy severeiy beaten, suffocated, suspended in the
          air and deprived of food.
          438. José Natividad Fiores Rojas, ex-President of the Rurai Brigades of
          San Juan, was arrested on 22 Juiy 1992 at Bagua Chica, Bagua, Amazonas,
          by members of the army from the Fifth Forest infantry division. He was
          detained for 13 days, during which he was reportediy severeiy beaten and
          subjected to eiectric shocks. He was aiso reported to have been ieft
          suspended for iong periods, which caused disiocation of the arms at the
          shouiders.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 93
          439. Nazario Edgar Flores Castro, organizational secretary of the National
          Mining Federation, was arrested by police officers at Yauli, Oroya, Junin, on
          15 May 1992 and taken to the local police station. He was detained for one
          week, during which he was reported to have been severely beaten with blunt
          instruments.
          440. AntIrtico Daniel Salas Côrdova was arrested in the district of
          San Martin, Lima, on 27 April 1992 by members of the National Police. He was
          taken to a police station where he died a few hours later. The autopsy report
          allegedly attributed the death to suffocation as a result of physical
          violence.
          441. Nancy Luz Pimentel Cuéllar, a student at Enrique Guzmmn y Valle
          University in suburban Lima, was arrested at her home at Chosica on
          10 October 1992 by members of the armed forces, beaten, and taken to DINCOTE.
          Among other forms of ill-treatment, electric shocks were applied to her
          fingertips and head until she fainted. She was released without charges and
          without acknowledgement of detention on 2 November 1992.
          442. Martha Huatay Ruiz, a lawyer and a member of the Association of
          Democratic Lawyers and of the Communist Party of Peru (PCP) Sendero Luminoso,
          was arrested on 17 October 1992. Before being sentenced to life imprisonment
          by a military court, she was tortured on the premises of DINCOTE. The Lima
          Bar Association was reported to have issued a public condemnation of this
          torture.
          443. Commander Marco Antonio ZIrate Rotta, Commander Enrique Aguilar del
          AlcIzar, Major César CIceres Haro and retired Major Salvador Carmona
          Bernasconi were arrested in November 1992 following an attempted coup d'etat .
          They were reportedly held incommunicado for 10 days on the premises of the
          National Intelligence Service at Lima. They were all reported to have been
          subjected to such torture as beatings, electric shocks and being suspended.
          444. Alberto Calipuy Valverde and Rosenda Yauri Ramos were arrested in
          March 1993 in the district of Angasmarca, province of Santiago de Chuco,
          department of La Libertad. They were found dead shortly thereafter in a
          deserted area. According to information received, they died as a result of
          ill-treatment inflicted at the military base.
          445. Wigberto VIsquez VIsquez, President of the Committee for the Defence of
          the Interests of the People of San Ignacio; PlIcido Alvarado Campos, President
          of the Provincial Federation of Rural and Urban Brigades; Victor Morales
          Labmn, President of the United Federation of Peasants and Brigades of
          San Ignacio (FUCASI) ; Crisanto Velasquez Flores, Director of FUCASI; Guillermo
          Granda Rodriguez, President of the Comittee of Agrarian Producers of
          San Ignacio; Guillermo Oyola Cornejo, secretary of the Provincial Federation
          of Rural and Urban Brigades of San Ignacio; Javier Garcia HuamIn, peasant;
          Benjamin Garcia Huamán, peasant; Daniel Cruz Bautista, peasant; and Samuel
          Huamin Huamán, peasant. According to the information received, these
          10 members of the Committee for the Defence of the Forests of San Ignacio,
          province of San Ignacio, department of Cajamarca, were arrested on
          27 June 1992 by members of the police and subjected to such forms of torture
          as beatings, suspension or immersion of the head in water.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 94
          446. Marcos Gonzulez Tuanama was arrested on 29 April 1992 by a military
          patrol and taken to Mariscal CIceres military base in the department of
          San Martin. While under interrogation he was reportedly subjected to
          torture in the form of electric shocks and beatings.
          447. Antero Pefla Pefla, a peasant leader and ex-President of the
          Quispampa Community (Huancabamba province, department of Piura) and
          Manager of the Regional Agrarian Federation of Piura, was arrested
          on 27 May 1993 by members of the army stationed in Huancabamba. For
          three days he was allegedly severely beaten, losing consciousness on
          several occasions, and he was threatened with death if he disclosed his
          ill-treatment.
          (d) Urgent appeals
          448. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the Government
          on 22 June 1993 concerning Maria Lucero Cumpa Miranda, who was detained in
          Lima by members of the police early in May 1993. Another appeal was made on
          16 August 1993 on behalf of Juan Abelardo Mallea Tomailla, a taxi driver, who
          was detained in Lima on 10 July 1993 by members of DINCOTE.
          Information received from the Government with respect to cases included in
          previous reports
          449. On 18 December 1992 the Government sent a reply on the cases of Jorge
          Nabid Leôn Ramirez and his brother César, reported to have been seriously
          beaten outside their home in Ayacucho in January 1992. The Government
          indicated that these persons had neither been arrested by military personnel
          nor ill-treated by members of the Huamanga Garrison.
          Information submitted by the Government in connection with Commission
          resolution 1993/4 8
          450. The Government submitted a number of notes verbales reporting on
          activities carried out by the Shining Path and MRTA terrorist groups in
          different parts of the country, including, selective murders, indiscriminate
          car bombings, threats against the life, person or property of individuals and
          kidnapping.
          451. The Government also provided information on a number of decrees
          promulgated in 1992 and 1993 in order to combat terrorism and pacify the
          country, including measures for reducing sentences and for repentance and
          amendments to the Code of Military Justice intended to protect better the
          rights of those accused of terrorism and treason. The Government also
          submitted information on its policy for the defence and promotion of
          human rights within the context of the pacification policy. It was
          further reported that, in the previous months there had been a reduced
          number of encounters between security forces and terrorist organizations
          and, therefore, the number of allegations of human rights violations had
          decreased.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 95
          Observations
          452. The Special Raporteur understands the gravity and ferocity of the
          insurgency that has confronted Peru since 1980. The atrocities committed by
          the insurgents no more justify torture than they do enforced disappearances or
          summary executions. The impunity effectively enjoyed by those responsible for
          such crimes calls for firm action backed by political will with a view to
          ensuring individual accountability by the security forces.
          Portugal
          Information transmitted to the Government
          453. By letter dated 3 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of reports he had received concerning the following two cases:
          (a) Francisco Carretas and a friend were arrested by agents of the
          Almada gendarmerie (GNR) unit in Charneca da Caparica on 6 February 1992. At
          the moment of arrest and later, at the GNR post, they were reportedly beaten
          and verbally threatened. They were then taken to a forest near Almada where
          three officers allegedly kicked and punched them; one officer allegedly also
          threatened to assault Francisco Carretas sexually. He was later treated for
          his injuries in the Garcia de Orta hospital in Almada. An X-ray allegedly
          showed a suspected fracture of the coccyx, while photographs taken after his
          release showed serious and extensive bruises on the back, buttocks and legs.
          A judicial inquiry was reportedly opened.
          (b) Orlando Correia, a French citizen of Portuguese origin, was
          reportedly physically assaulted by officers of the judiciary police on
          9 September 1992, while in preventive detention in Guarda prison on charges
          relating to drug-trafficking. He was said to have been admitted later to the
          emergency service of Guarda hospital in a state of unconsciousness. According
          to the medical certificate issued by the hospital, he had bruises and
          scratches on his chest and back. The Office of the Director General of the
          judiciary police reportedly opened a disciplinary investigation into the
          matter at the end of September.
          Republic of Korea
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          454. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received reports of prisoners being beaten, deprived of
          sleep and forced to do repeated physical exercises during interrogation. The
          reports also indicated that in very few cases had the Government instituted
          independent and impartial investigations and few cases had led to prosecution
          of law enforcement officials. Abuses had, in particular, been carried out by
          the Agency for National Security Planning (ANSP) which could detain and
          interrogate prisoners for up to 20 days before charges were made. The
          individual cases described in the following paragraphs were transmitted to the
          Government.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 96
          455. Chun Hee-sik, a trade union activist, was arrested by ANSP members
          on 4 September 1992. He was held in custody at the ANSP facilities in
          Namsan or 48 hours, during which time he was reportedly severely beaten
          and allowed to sleep for only four hours. After his release he was
          admitted to a Seoul hospital for treatment. He filed a complaint
          with the Seoul District Prosecutor's Office about his treatment at
          the ANSP premises.
          456. On 29 November 1993 the Government replied that Mr. Chun had filed a
          complaint at the Seoul District Prosecutor's Office alleging that he was not
          treated properly during interrogation by the officials of the Agency for
          National Security Planning. His complaint was being investigated by the
          Prosecutor's Office.
          457. Song Hae-suk was arrested on 9 September 1992 by ANSP officials, who
          reportedly beat her and threatened her with sexual abuse in order to make her
          sign a statement about her husband's alleged spying activities. This incident
          took place in the presence of her three-year-old son who was allegedly
          abducted with her and not released until 19 September.
          458. On 29 November 1993 the Government replied that Mrs. Song had been
          arrested on charges of assisting espionage activities and had later been
          sentenced to 18 months' imprisonment with a stay of sentence for two years.
          The allegation of maltreatment was unfounded. No such allegation had been
          made by her or her representatives before or during her trial.
          459. Son Byung-son, a Minjung Party candidate in the March 1992 parliamentary
          elections, was arrested on 26 September 1992 at his family home in southern
          Seoul. According to the reports, he was beaten continually for three days by
          a group of 13 men; on the fourth day he was allegedly forced to do repeated
          physical exercises, such as squatting with his arms stretched out and standing
          on his hands. It was also reported that he had been treated by a doctor on
          several occasions; this included massage and the administering of injections.
          460. On 29 November 1993 the Government replied that Mr. Son had been arrested
          on 26 September 1992 on charges of espionage. His case was pending in the
          Supreme Court. On 11 June 1993 he had filed a complaint at the Seoul District
          Prosecutor's Office with regard to his treatment during interrogation. The
          complaint was being investigated.
          461. Baik Tae-ung, alleged leader of the banned Socialist Workers League
          (Sanomaeng) , was arrested on 29 April 1992 by ANSP agents and allegedly
          subjected to interrogation for 22 days. According to the reports,
          he testified in court that during this time he had been subjected to
          various types of torture, such as sleep deprivation, drug injection
          and mob beating.
          462. On 29 November 1993 the Government replied that the allegation of
          maltreatment was unfounded. It had not been substantiated during the trial
          and Mr. Baik had not filed a complaint.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 97
          Urgent appeals
          463. The Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal on 22 July 1993 on behalf of
          Noh Tae-hun, a human rights activist who was reportedly arrested by officers
          of the Security Division of the National Police Administration in the early
          evening of 15 July 1993, while he was visiting the office of his lawyer. The
          warrant of arrest shown by the police was reportedly incorrectly filled in.
          When the lawyers urged the police officers to follow the correct legal
          procedures, they were reportedly beaten and threatened.
          464. With respect to this case the Government replied on S August 1993 that
          the warrant of arrest for Mr. Noh was issued by a judge of the Seoul Criminal
          District Court on 15 July 1993. The form of the warrant was correct. It
          showed the place of detention (Yongsan police station) and a summary of
          charges against him. From 15 to 23 July, Mr. Noh was detained at Yongsan
          police station for interrogation. During that period, he met his attorneys
          every day and his family members six times. Since 23 July 1993, Mr. Noh had
          been in custody at the Seoul detention centre pending trial. He was not
          restricted from meeting his attorneys or family members.
          465. On 24 September 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent another urgent appeal on
          behalf of Kim Sam-sok and his sister Kim Un-ju, who were reportedly arrested
          without warrants on 8 September 1993 by the Agency for National Security
          Planning under the National Security Law. It was also alleged that they were
          beaten and deprived of sleep during interrogations. According to family
          members who were permitted brief access to the detainees, they were in a
          trance-like state.
          466. With respect to this case the Government replied, on 22 October 1993,
          that on 8 September 1993 Kim Un-ju had been arrested on suspicion of
          engaging in espionage activity; a warrant of arrest had been issued
          on 10 September 1993. He and his sister had been detained at Jungbu police
          station for interrogation. On 24 September their cases had been transmitted
          to the Public Prosecutor's Office of the Seoul Criminal District. At the time
          of the reply they were in custody at the Seoul detention centre pending
          indictment and trial. They had been treated humanely during interrogations.
          No complaint had been filed by their family members or attorney with regard to
          their treatment while in detention.
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          467. On 12 November 1992 the Special Rapporteur communicated to the Government
          information received about the allegations of torture inflicted upon
          Kim Nak-jung, Shim Keum-sup, Kwon Du-young and Noh Jong-sun, arrested in
          August 1992 and taken to the Agency for National Security Planning.
          468. On 15 July 1993 the Government replied that Kim Nak-jung had been
          taken to the Agency for National Security Planning for questioning
          on 25 August 1992; this was done with his consent; he was arrested on
          charges of espionage on 27 August 1992. Shim Keum-sup, Kwon Du-young and
          Mr. Noh Jong-sun were arrested on 27 August, 30 August and 29 August 1992,
          respectively, under warrants; after the arrests, they were permitted to
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 98
          meet their lawyers in accordance with the pertinent laws and regulations;
          the reports of beatings and sleep deprivation were unfounded; no such
          allegations had been made by the accused themselves or their representatives
          before or during their trials.
          Romania
          Information transmitted to the Government
          469. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government that he had received reports alleging that police officers resorted
          to torture and ill-treatment of detainees frequently in order to force them to
          make confessions which were later used as evidence in the courts. The
          following individual cases were reported:
          (a) Stefan Tasnadi, an ethnic Hungarian from Sic commune, Cluj county,
          was arrested on 25 August 1992. While being taken to the police station in
          the town of Gherla, Cluj county, Mr. Tasnadi was allegedly beaten with a
          rubber truncheon and a loaded weapon. Upon arrival, he was beaten on the
          face, neck and hands with truncheons and fists. According to a medical
          certificate issued after his release, he received wounds requiring five to
          six days' medical attention. Despite the filing of an official complaint to
          the Military Procurator's Office, no investigation was reported to have taken
          place.
          (b) Mihai Poteras was arrested at the end of February 1993 in the
          village of Tudora-Botosani on suspicion of theft and taken to the police
          station in Pascani, where he was allegedly beaten savagely for five days.
          After his release he was examined by a forensic expert in Bucharest and later
          admitted to the St. Spiridon hospital in lasi for medical care.
          (c) Doru Marian Beldie, aged 19, was arrested in Bucharest
          on 16 June 1992 on suspicion of homosexual activity. He was taken to
          the 17th District police station where he was reportedly beaten with
          truncheons on the palms of the hands and soles of the feet for several hours.
          (d) Marcel Brosca, a 20-year-old student, was arrested on 7 March 1992
          in Tecuci and taken to the police office in the railway station, where he was
          reportedly beaten for three or four hours. He was allegedly pulled by the
          hair; the sides and the back of his head were beaten against the table and the
          wall until blood poured over his face; his arms were twisted and he was beaten
          on the soles of his feet with truncheons. He finally signed a statement
          indicating that he had forced a minor to have homosexual relations with him.
          470. The Special Rapporteur was also informed of an incident involving
          ill-treatment of members of the Roma community in Bucharest on 3 July 1992.
          According to the reports, between 40 and 50 soldiers belonging to military
          police unit tIN 02180 came to the market at Piata Rahova armed with rubber
          truncheons, chair legs and pickaxes and proceeded to attack indiscriminately
          Roma people who were at the market. As a result, several persons were
          seriously injured, among them Mircea Gheorghe. He was allegedly hit with a
          stick on the head, which made him lose consciousness; the soldiers, however,
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 99
          continued to beat him despite the bleeding from his head. The Institute of
          Legal Medicine of Bucharest stated three hours later that Mircea Gheorghe had
          suffered a 4 cm-long lesion on his head and multiple, large contusions on the
          right shoulder, chest, thigh and calf.
          471. The Special Rapporteur also received a report on the prison conditions
          prevailing in the country. They referred to the continuing use of methods of
          restraint such as handcuffs and leg irons for very long periods as a form of
          punishment, or the frequent use of isolation cells as a means of punishment
          for relatively minor breaches of the internal prison rules.
          Rwanda
          Information transmitted to the Government
          472. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information concerning the following persons,
          allegedly arrested and tortured in 1991:
          (a) Obed Bazimaziki and Adrien Rangira, editors of the newspaper
          Kangura , were arrested in Kigali on the morning of 10 December 1991 and taken
          to the President's Office, where they were beaten with clubs and wires. The
          next day, their mouths were taped with material soaked in hot pepper before
          they were taken to the Kami military camp.
          (b) Providence Kayitesi, sister of journalist Adrien Rangira, was
          arrested in Kigali on 21 December 1991. She was allegedly interrogated at the
          President's Office for two days and beaten with electric wires and sticks.
          (c) Désiré Murego, a student at the Butare Economic and Social School,
          was arrested on 19 August 1991 and taken to the Central Intelligence
          Department for questioning, during which he was beaten very violently on the
          hands and feet with sticks and electric wires.
          (d) Jean-Baptiste Gacukiro, owner of a small company in the Gisenyi
          region, was arrested on 5 April 1991 and taken to the Bigogwe camp, where he
          was violently beaten, in particular with rifle butts.
          (e) Jthdulkheri Mbarushimana was arrested in Kigali on 19 August 1991.
          He was held at the Central Intelligence Department for six days, during which
          time he was allegedly clubbed, punched and beaten with electric wires.
          (f) Oswald Manzi and Faustin Rutalindwa, technicians with the BIFMAR
          company, were arrested in Kigali on 25 July 1991 and taken to the President's
          Office, where they were allegedly severely beaten and forced to sign a
          statement.
          473. The Special Rapporteur was also informed that, in February 1993, members
          of the security forces arrested a large number of Tutsi citizens in the
          streets of Kigali, took them to military bases and tortured them. At least 19
          of them, including Kituku Hayidarusi, were killed; their bodies showed signs
          of severe beatings.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 100
          474. By the same letter the Special Rapporteur reminded the Government of
          allegations transmitted to it in 1992 regarding which no reply had been
          received.
          Saudi Arabia
          Urgent appeals
          475. On 23 June 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of ‘Abdullah al-Hamed, a writer and lecturer at al-Imam
          Muhammad bin Saud University in Riyadh, as well as a founding member of Lujnat
          al-Difa' ‘an al-Hugug al-Shar'iyya (Committee for the Defence of Legitimate
          Rights) . He was reportedly arrested at his house by members of al-Mabahith
          al- ‘Amma (General Intelligence) on 15 June 1993 and was being held in
          incommunicado detention. Fears were expressed that he might be subjected to
          torture. Another member of the above-mentioned Committee, Dr. Muhammad
          ‘Abdullah al-Mas'ari, had also been held incommunicado since his arrest
          on 15 May 1993 and was said to have been deprived of sleep for prolonged
          periods.
          Senegal
          Information transmitted to the Government
          476. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of reports he had received concerning the following persons:
          (a) Mody Sy, a parliamentarian belonging to the Senegalese Democratic
          Party was arrested in Dakar on 20 May 1993. He was held for one week in the
          police station on Thiong Street, where he was allegedly tortured to make him
          confess that he had taken part in the murder of the Vice-President of the
          Constitutional Council. According to the information received, electric
          shocks were applied to his fingers and genitals. One month later, he was
          still under medical treatment and his lawyer had reportedly not been able to
          get an investigation started into the allegations of torture.
          (b) Ramata Guèye, a mango seller, was arrested on 14 July 1993 in
          connection with the same investigation as Mr. Sy. She was allegedly tortured
          first at the Pout police station near Thiès and then at the Thiès police
          station. Two days later, she was released without charges. A medical report
          made after her release stated that she had bruises on the right hand and
          buttocks and a sprained finger; hair had been pulled out of her head and there
          was blood in her urine.
          Sierra Leone
          Urgent appeals
          477. On 21 April 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of Ernest Allen, Permanent Secretary at the Department of
          Defence; Fatmata Binta Jalloh, businesswoman; Foday Kallon, employee at the
          Ministry of Foreign Affairs; Rosaline Kamara, official at the Sierra Leone
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 101
          Embassy in Russia; Ernest Bai Koroma, Managing Director of Reliance Insurance
          and Transport Corporation of Sierra Leone; and Bockarie Samura. According to
          the reports, these persons were arrested on about 18 March 1993 on suspicion
          of involvement in a plot to overthrow the Government. However, they had
          allegedly not been charged with any offence and were detained incommunicado.
          Fears were expressed that they might be subjected to torture or ill-treatment.
          South Africa
          Urgent appeals
          478. On 17 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent un urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of the following persons: Thabo Sejanamane, coordinator
          for the non-governmental organization called Mafikeng Anti-Repression Forum;
          Themba Gwabeni, chairperson, Mafikeng branch of the African National Congress
          (ANC) ; Nomvula Hlongwane; Ephraim Motoko; Gordon Kgamanyane and Johannes
          “Jones” Molefe, all Mafikeng ANC branch executive members.
          479. According to the reports, Thabo Sejanamane was arrested at his home by
          officers of the Bophuthatswana “homeland” security police at about 3 a.m.
          on 13 August 1993. The police reportedly confiscated documents and reports
          about the human rights situation in Bophuthatswana. Nomvula Hlongwane,
          Ephraim Motoko, Gordon Kgamanyane and Johannes Molefe were arrested at their
          homes by Bophuthatswana security police officers in the early hours
          of 12 August 1993. Themba Gwabeni was arrested at about 10 a.m. on the same
          morning at his workplace. It was also reported that lawyers representing the
          detainees asked the police where they were being held, under what legislation,
          and the reasons for their detention, but the police did not provide this
          information or grant lawyers access to the detainees. Relatives had
          nevertheless been allowed to hand clothing into Mmabatho police station for
          them. Given the circumstances in which they were being detained, fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture or ill-treatment.
          480. In the same appeal the Special Rapporteur brought to the Government's
          attention information he had received on the arrest, on 17 August 1993, of
          Louis Sibeko, secretary of the Thokoza Civic Association. Members of the
          South African Police allegedly burst into his house at Seronyela Street,
          Thokoza, and took him to the headquarters of the Political and Violent Crime
          Unit. Fears were also expressed that he might be subjected to torture or
          ill-treatment.
          481. Another urgent appeal was sent on 26 August 1993 on behalf of Makgowa
          Letele, Bushy Boy Machere, Power Makgothi, Lucky Maponya, Gift Moeti Mokoena,
          Ini Mokoena, Jabu Mokoena, Buti Moloi, Motlalepule Motloung, Tshepo Sewetsang
          and Buti Thinane. They were reportedly arrested in Thokoza on 17 August 1993,
          the same date on which Louis Sibeko was also arrested. They were all
          reportedly being held at Boksburg prison under section 3 (1) of the “Unrest
          Areas” (emergency) regulations, which permitted the police to hold a person
          without charge or trial for 30 days and left access to the detainee at the
          discretion of the police authorities. In view of the circumstances fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture or ill-treatment.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 102
          Spain
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          482. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which although
          article 520 of the Criminal Procedure Act provided for a period of 72 hours
          before a detainee had to be brought before the court, articles 520 bis and 527
          altered this rule with respect to persons detained under suspicion of
          collaboration with or membership of armed bands or terrorist groups. Thus,
          the period of 72 hours might be extended by another 48 hours pending a court
          order and at the request of the police, who were not required to bring the
          detainee in person before the court in order to obtain the order. Moreover,
          throughout this period, the detainee might be kept incommunicado, which meant
          in particular that he was denied the assistance of a lawyer of his choice and
          could not inform his family or friends of his place of detention. According
          to the sources, this legal situation facilitated the practice of torture and
          ill-treatment.
          483. It was also reported that law enforcement officials who had been
          condemned for torture of ill-treatment of detainees had in some cases remained
          in active service and had sometimes been promoted or pardoned. Moreover, no
          precautionary measures had been taken, such as suspension from duty while the
          matter was still pending, even though a particular case could take years to
          solve.
          484. The Special Rapporteur also informed the Government about allegations
          received on the cases described in the following paragraphs, to which the
          Government replied on 13 December 1993.
          485. Kepa Urra Guridi was arrested on 29 January 1992 by the Civil Guard in
          Basauri. According to reports he was taken to the woods for approximately one
          hour before being taken to La Salve barracks. Some eight hours later he was
          admitted to the Hospital Civil de Basurto which reported numerous bruises on
          the face, hands, wrists, legs and thighs, with damage to the muscle tissue.
          Two neck injuries were subsequently diagnosed. According to statements made
          by Mr. Urra two days later, the bruises were the result of beatings inflicted
          after his arrest. He also claimed to have been subjected to suffocation with
          a plastic bag over the head, as well as to mock executions. Examining
          Magistrate No. 8 of Bilbao opened a judicial inquiry with respect to these
          claims of torture.
          486. With respect to this case the Government sent a report issued by the
          Civil Guard according to which at the moment of the arrest, as well as during
          the transfer from Basauri to La Salve barracks, Mr. Urra Guridi violently
          confronted the arresting agents, who had to use physical force in order to
          carry out the arrest. Any injury sustained by Mr. Urra was, therefore, the
          result of this struggle. While in the barracks he was found lying on the
          ground of his cell and was immediately taken to hospital, since a doctor
          diagnosed cardiac arrhythmia. In the context of the judicial investigation
          being carried out following the complaint filed by his wife, several members
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 103
          of the forces which took part in the arrest were requested to make statements
          before Magistrate No. 8. No charges had, however, been brought against any
          particular agent. The contents of the medical reports were not known.
          487. On the other hand, the Government also provided the Special Rapporteur
          with a copy of a report sent to Magistrate No. 8 by the Chief Attorney of
          Bilbao indicating the circumstances in which Mr. Urra was arrested. The
          report also indicated that representatives of judicial authorities who visited
          Mr. Urra at the Basurto hospital on 30 January 1992 found that he was in a
          situation of total disorientation and that he bore multiple injuries and
          bruises of recent origin. A few hours later a nurse who was urgently called
          to Mr. Urra's room, found there two men who identified themselves as members
          of the Civil Guard and saw that the detainee had blood in his mouth. He was
          subsequently examined by a forensic physician who also found multiple injuries
          and bruises. When asked about their origin the detainee gave a full account
          of the treatment to which he had been subjected, including beatings,
          suffocation and death threats. He indicated that the ill-treatment had
          continued at the hospital. A copy of the medical report containing all the
          details of Mr. Urra's state of health was also provided by the Government.
          488. Manuel Muiflos Garcia, an inmate at Puerto-2 prison, CIdiz, was reported
          to have been brutally beaten on 14 August 1992 by prison officials who tried
          to tie him to his bed, apparently as a punishment for having insulted them.
          As a result of this assault Manuel Muiflos reportedly suffered a broken nose
          and split lips, and one of his eyes was totally closed by swelling. In this
          state, he allegedly remained tied to his bed for several hours before he was
          seen by a doctor. On the following day he was transferred to Valencia prison.
          A claim of ill-treatment was lodged with the Prison Inspection Judge of
          Valencia.
          489. With respect to this case the Government provided a report issued by the
          “Direcciôn General de Instituciones Penitenciarias” indicating that Mr. Muiflos
          had attacked several members of the prison staff. As a result of the struggle
          which followed four agents as well as the prisoner had had to be taken care of
          at the prison's medical service for slight injuries.
          490. Eduardo Basabe Larrinaga and Germmn Cristôbal Aznar were reportedly
          beaten severely during their transfer from Ocafla 1 prison in Cuenca to
          Nanclares de Oca prison in Alava by the Civil Guards responsible for escorting
          them on 17 August 1992. The family lodged a complaint with the court of
          Gasteiz on 27 August 1992.
          491. Pako Etxebeste Arozena, an inmate at the provincial prison of
          Martutene-Donostia, was reported to have been severely beaten during his
          transfer from Burgos prison on 18 August 1992, as a result of which he
          suffered injuries to one eye and to the jaw area, and multiple bruises to the
          head. The family filed a complaint with Court of Investigation No. 2 at
          San Sebastian on 19 October 1992.
          492. Regarding the above three cases the Government forwarded a report made by
          the 111 post of the Civil Guard indicating that judicial authorities had
          requested information about the identity of the agents who took part in the
          said transfers and had questioned some of them. However, nobody had been
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 104
          found responsible yet in connection with the alleged torture and, therefore,
          no disciplinary sanctions had been imposed. It was also reported that the
          medical reports issued on their arrival at the above-mentioned prisons did not
          indicate any signs of injuries.
          493. Arnaldo Otegi Mondragôn was reportedly beaten up by a group of five Civil
          Guards on 10 September 1992 upon arrival at Herrera de la Mancha penitentiary
          centre from the provincial prison of Ciudad Real. On 15 September he was
          transferred to Alcall-Meco penitentiary centre where he was once again the
          victim of aggression.
          494. With respect to this case the Government sent a report of the 111 post of
          the Civil Guard indicating that Mr. Otegi had attacked an agent who had
          proceeded to search him at his arrival at Herrera de la Mancha prison. A
          complaint had been filed with the Examining Magistrate No. 1 of Ciudad Real.
          On 15 September 1992 he was transferred from the Alcall-Meco prison to the
          Zaragoza prison. Subsequently, judicial authorities requested information
          from the Civil Guard about the identity of the agents who took part in
          the transfers between the provincial prison of Ciudad Real and the
          Herrera de la Mancha penitentiary centre, as well as between the Alcall-Meco
          prison and the Zaragoza prison. However, nobody had been found responsible
          yet in connection with the alleged torture and, therefore, no disciplinary
          sanctions had been imposed. It was further reported that the medical report
          issued on arrival at the Madrid prison indicated bruises on the upper lip.
          495. Koldo Arrese Garate, an inmate of the prison of Daroca in Zaragoza, was
          reported to have been severely beaten, notably with an iron rod, by prison
          officials and members of the Civil Guard on 12 September 1992. The prison
          doctor diagnosed numerous injuries to the arms, shoulders, knees and genital
          area resulting from this beating. The family was also able to observe these
          injuries during a visit which took place one week after the above events.
          On 30 September 1992 a complaint was filed with the Prison Inspection Judge of
          Zaragoza.
          496. With respect to this case the Government provided information about the
          riots which took place in the Daroca prison, in the context of which
          Mr. Arrese seemed to have been injured. Mr. Arrese's name, however, did not
          appear in the initial list of inmates who were injured following the
          intervention of the forces of order. Mr. Arrese filed a complaint with the
          Daroca Examining Magistrate on 18 September 1992. However, the judicial
          investigation still continued. Further information provided by the Government
          indicated that, according to the medical report, Mr. Arrese had multiple
          bruises on several parts of his body.
          497. Imanol Txabarri, under house arrest in the French town of Cahors, was
          handed over to the Civil Guard on 10 July 1993 and transferred to the
          headquarters of the Civil Guard in Madrid. According to his statements made
          before the regular judge of Central Court No. 2 of the National High Court
          on 13 July, Mr. Txabarri was allegedly beaten repeatedly on the head and
          testicles, and was kept blindfolded throughout the period of his detention.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 105
          498. Regarding this case the Government replied that the allegations of
          ill-treatment were false. Mr. Txabarri had been examined by a forensic
          physician of the Figueras and La Bisbal Courts who certified that there
          were no marks of injuries. A second medical examination was carried out
          on 11 July 1993 by the forensic physician of the “Audiencia Nacional”,
          the results of which were not known. No member of the Civil Guard had been
          charged in connection with the said allegations.
          499. The Government also provided the Special Rapporteur with information
          about article 520 and other articles of the Criminal Procedure Act, designed
          to protect the rights of detainees. Only in the cases of organized crime was
          the judge allowed, at the request of the police, to extend the duration of
          detention to a maximum of five days and to order that the detainee be kept
          incommunicado. Even in these cases, however, the detainee was not deprived of
          legal assistance and was entitled to daily medical examinations. It was
          mentioned that complaints of torture or ill-treatment were commonly filed by
          members of the ETA terrorist group as a strategy to undermine the reputation
          of the Forces of Order. In addition to this, the Government provided a list
          of 30 officials convicted of torture in trials held since the beginning of the
          198 Os
          Sri Lanka
          Information transmitted to the Government
          500. By letter dated 3 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received reports according to which prisoners still
          continue to be tortured and ill-treated in both military and police custody,
          despite positive measures taken by the Government since 1992 in order to
          improve the human rights situation in the country. These measures include,
          for instance, the issuance of circulars by the security forces on arrest and
          detention procedures intended to avoid abuses, as well as the establishment
          of the Human Rights Task Force, a body entrusted with monitoring the
          observance of the fundamental rights of detainees.
          501. However, special legal provisions which differ from normal criminal
          procedure are still in force and can be applied to prisoners detained under
          the Emergency Regulations or the Prevention of Terrorism Act (PTA) . Thus,
          prisoners held under the PTA need not be brought before a judicial authority
          for 90 days, and under the Emergency Regulations prisoners can be held
          for 30 days before a magistrate sees them. Also, confessions made before
          a police officer of the rank of assistant superintendent of police or above
          are admissible in court under the Emergency Regulations, unlike under normal
          criminal law, which requires confessions to be made before a magistrate in
          order to protect prisoners from confessing under duress. Furthermore, under
          these provisions prisoners need not be held in publicly known places of
          detention and officials of various ranks are empowered to decide where
          detainees can be held, without any requirement that they make these places
          publicly known. According to the sources, all these elements facilitate the
          practice of torture.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 106
          502. It was also reported that in the north-east torture and ill-treatment of
          prisoners continued in military, Special Task Force and police custody.
          Methods of torture include severe beatings; electric shocks; burning with
          cigarettes or matches; pouring petrol into prisoners' nostrils and then
          placing a plastic bag over their heads; suspending prisoners from their thumbs
          and beating them; beating with barbed wire and repeatedly submerging
          prisoners' heads in water while they were suspended from their ankles. Women
          have reported being raped by soldiers. Torture was also reported to occur in
          both police and military custody in the south with respect to political
          detainees arrested under the Emergency Regulations and the PTA, as well as
          criminal suspects. It was further reported that, in the majority of cases,
          victims of torture do not file complaints or report their cases to
          governmental or non-governmental bodies for fear of reprisals.
          503. In addition to the foregoing the Special Rapporteur received affidavits
          concerning the following two cases:
          (a) Sinnathurai Mohan, from Mylanny North, Chunnakam, went to
          Thirukeetheswamram on 16 January 1991 for reasons related to his business.
          On the boat to Vidathiilithivu he was reportedly arrested by members of the
          Sri Lankan navy together with three other persons. After being beaten he was
          allegedly handed over to the Sri Lanka army which took him to the Thallady
          army camp where he was allegedly beaten again and hung by the thumbs of his
          hands. For the three following days he was made to stay in a room called the
          “meat stall” as it was covered in a pool of blood. On 17 November 1991 he was
          taken to the Kalutara prison where he was frequently assaulted. He was
          released in August 1992.
          (b) Packinyanathan Anton was arrested at sea on 14 October 1990 by
          members of the Sri Lankan navy and taken to Karainagar camp where, for several
          days, he was reportedly hung upside-down and beaten with iron rods and clubs.
          He was subsequently transferred to the Palaly prison where he was reportedly
          forced to eat pieces of shoe leather and cotton dipped in diesel oil. For
          some months, the beatings reportedly continued and he was kept blindfolded and
          handcuffed. He was released in July 1993.
          Sudan
          Urgent appeals transmitted to the Government and replies received
          504. During the period under review the Special Rapporteur sent 12 urgent
          appeals to the Government on behalf of persons said to have been arrested and
          to be at risk of being tortured. Summaries of these appeals are reproduced in
          the following paragraphs. The dates on which they were sent appear in
          parentheses at the end of each summary.
          505. Sayed Ahmed Abdel Rahman El Mahadi, an Ansar leader and former Minister
          of the Interior, was reportedly arrested by members of the security forces who
          stormed into his house on 17 April 1993. According to the reports, his son
          Mohamed was also arrested and brutally beaten while in detention and was later
          left unconscious near his house in Omdurman. (28 April 1993)
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 107
          506. With respect to this case the Government replied on 3 May 1993 that
          Sayed Ahmed Abdel Rahman Elmahdi had been summoned by the competent security
          authorities for questioning. After completing the inquiry, he had been
          immediately released on the same day. He was not arrested and his residence
          was not stormed by members of the security forces. His son was neither
          arrested nor summoned for questioning by the security authorities.
          507. Siddig Mohamed Eltom, a student at Ahlia University, was arrested
          on 9 April 1993 following a peaceful demonstration in Omdurman. According to
          the reports, other people arrested in connection with the same incidents were
          released the following day, after having been severely beaten. Siddig Mohamed
          Eltom, however, was reported to be still in custody in a detention centre
          situated behind the City Bank. (7 May 1993)
          508. Mohamed al Mahdi, Imam of the Wad Nubawi mosque in Omdurman;
          Abdel Mahmud Abbo, Imam of the Guba mosque in Omdurman; Abdullah Ishaq,
          director of religious guidance in the Ansar Affairs office. These three
          senior members of the Ansar Islamic sect were reportedly arrested on
          29 April 1993. Abdel Rahman Yunis, resident representative of the
          Arisar Imam, was arrested in Ad-Damazin, a provincial town some 300 miles
          south-east of Khartoum. Al Fadl Omar was also reportedly arrested in
          Ad-Damazin, along with seven other men. Al-Hadi Adam, resident representative
          of the Ansar Imam in Nyala, was reportedly arrested in that town.
          Musa Abdallah al-Bashir was reported to have been arrested in Ed-Dueim,
          a town some 140 miles south of Khartoum. Al-Zahawi Ibrahim and
          Mustafa Abd al-Gadir Abd al-Latif were reportedly arrested in Wad Medani.
          509. These arrests, alleged to have taken place in April 1993, were believed
          to be related to the circulation of a speech which called for the return of
          multi-party democracy originally made by Sadiq al-Mahdi in Omdurman in late
          March following prayers to celebrate the Eid al-Fitr. Abdul Rasoul
          al-Nur Ismael, who was originally arrested with Sadiq al-Mahdi on 5 April 1993
          and later released, was reported to have been rearrested together with
          Mirghani Abdel Rahman Suleiman and Fadlalla Burma Nasir, both senior members
          of the Umma Party, in connection with an alleged plot to overthrow the
          Government. (14 May 1993)
          510. On 18 August 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          Alzahawi Ibrahim had been arrested on 3 May and faced criminal charges;
          Abdul Rasoul Al Nur Ismael on 2 July and faced the same charges; and
          Mirghani Abdelrahman Salman on 29 April, also on criminal charges. None of
          the other persons mentioned in the appeal had been arrested.
          511. Dr Ibrahim al-Amin, ex-cabinet member, arrested around 11 April 1993
          allegedly in Khartoum; Mohammed Abdel-Rahim, arrested in El-Obeid;
          Mohammed Yussuf Hassan, arrested in Wad Medani; Ibrahim Ali Jthdelgadir Fageer;
          al-Sadiq Ibrahim; Abdel Bagi Taj al-Din, Omda of the Shanabla tribe;
          Osman Idris Habani, teacher; Berier Mohamed al-Tom, teacher; Hussein Ahmad
          Fadl, merchant: these persons were reportedly arrested in Ad-Dueim, a town
          some 140 miles south of Khartoum in April or May 1993.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 108
          512. Dr. Yahia Mukwar, a member of the democratic Unionist Party and
          Jthdel-Rahim al-Hussein, a businessman and member of the Democratic Unionist
          Party, were reported to have been arrested in Khartoum. Abdelrahman al-Khair
          Abdelwahab, a farmer and Mamoun Yousif, a member of the Ansar religious order
          and resident representative of the Ansar Imam, were reportedly arrested in
          Kassala, in eastern Sudan. Abdel Ghani Mohamed Omar al-Amir, a member of the
          Umma Party, was arrested in Ad-Damer, a town approximately 170 miles north of
          Khartoum. All these arrests reportedly also took place in April or May 1993.
          513. In addition, the Special Rapporteur received information concerning the
          arrests in Khartoum in late April or early May 1993 of the following persons
          believed to have been involved in a plot to overthrow the Government:
          Major-General al-Fatih Mohamed Abdel A'al, retired army officer;
          Colonel Mustafa Ahmad al-Tai, retired army officer; Colonel Mohamed Hassan
          Osman al-Zubeir, retired army officer; Lieutenant al-Tayib Nuor al-Daim
          Mohamed, retired army officer; Haidar al-Tigani, retired army officer;
          Gaafar Yassin Ahmad, pharmacist; Osman Mohamed Ali Gumma; al-Tiraifi al-Tahir
          Fadur; Yasir Abu Zeid Ahmad; al-Hassan Ahmad Salih Mohamed; Mubarek Mohamed
          Abdalla Gadeen; Fadlalla Burma Nasir, former Minister and member of the
          Umma Party; Mirghani ‘Abd al-Rahman Suleiman, member of the Democratic
          Unionist Party; Osman Mustapha Mahjoub. Eight of them, including
          Colonel Mustapha Ahmad al-Tai and Osman Mustapha Mahjoub, were shown on
          Sudanese television on 26 April 1993. They were shackled and were reported to
          have bruises, suggesting that they had been beaten. (26 May 1993)
          514. The following members of the banned Umma Party and of the Fur ethnic
          group were reportedly arrested in the western region of Darfur in late
          April 1993: Mohamed Atim Mohamed Salam, former member of parliament;
          Yusif Mohamed Sharaf al-Din, director of an agricultural project; Nasr al-Din
          Tambur, teacher; Yacoub Khamis, former member of parliament; Omer Haroun,
          former minister in regional government; Fiqi Salih Ibrahim, head of Darfur
          State religious department; Mohamed Sowar Adam; and al-Zubeir Mohamed Khamis:
          They were alleged to have been beaten by security officers, and Nasr al-Din
          Tambur to be seriously ill as a result of ill-treatment. They were reportedly
          held incommunicado, possibly in Zalingei in Southern Darfur or in al-Fasher,
          the capital of Northern Darfur. (14 June 1993)
          515. Yousif Hussein, Abdel Karim Abdel Jaliel and Nadir Mahjoub Mohamed Salih,
          members of the banned Sudan Communist Party, were reportedly arrested on
          11 June 1993 in Khartoum North and taken to an unknown place of detention.
          (25 June 1993)
          516. The following members of the banned Umma Party were reportedly arrested
          on 16 June 1993 in El Fashir, Darfur region, allegedly on suspicion of
          plotting against the regional governor, and taken to an unknown place of
          detention: Ibrahim Mohammed Abbo, former member of Parliament for Darfur
          region; Abdalla Ali Masar, former regional minister for Darfur region;
          Dr. Abdel Latif Abdel Rahim, physician; Dr. Adam Mohammed Ahmed, former deputy
          governor of Darfur region; Abdel Rahman Ishaq, Umma Party representative in
          Nyala, Darfur region; Atim Mohammed Salama, local government official;
          Adam Ibrahim Khalil, Ministry of Agriculture official in Darfur region;
          Abdel Rahman Yousif, assistant medical officer. (5 July 1993)
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 109
          517. On 20 July 1993 the Government replied that the above-mentioned persons
          had never been arrested.
          518. The following leading members of the Nuba community in Khartoum, were
          reportedly arrested in late June by security officers at a number of different
          places in the city: Mohamed Hamad Kowa, former Minister of Tourism and member
          of the Sudan National Party; Mustaf a Angelo, member of the Sudan National
          Party; Khamis Farajallah Kortel, priest; Angelo, teacher; Idris Shameila,
          teacher. They were allegedly being held incommunicado in an unknown location.
          (14 July 1993)
          519. On 19 August 1993 the Government replied that these persons had never
          been arrested. Mohamed Hamad Kowa, former Minister of Tourism was leading his
          normal life in his house in Khartoum and had never been detained or called for
          interrogation by the security authorities.
          520. Mamoun Elyas Mohammed Ahmed, a former police officer who was working as a
          public relations officer in the Saudi Arabian embassy in Khartoum was arrested
          in late August 1993 in Khartoum on suspicion of spying. Reports indicated
          that he had been tortured in custody.
          521. El-Fadil Adam, a member of the banned Umma Party, was arrested in late
          August 1993 in Khartoum, apparently on suspicion of producing and distributing
          leaflets critical of the Government. His place of detention was not known.
          (15 September 1993)
          522. On 23 September 1993 four women who had just communicated information to
          the Special Rapporteur on the situation of human rights in the Sudan, were
          arrested in front of the United Nations Development Programme (UNDP) office in
          Khartoum by members of the Sudanese police. The Special Rapporteur and three
          of his assistants personally witnessed the arrest and saw two of the women
          being brutally dragged along the street and forcefully thrown into police
          vehicles. A few minutes after the Special Rapporteur had left for the office
          of the Minister of Justice, the police brutally arrested, in front of many
          witnesses, a group of about 25 women who had been waiting in front of the IJNDP
          office to meet him.
          523. Baha'a al-Din Abul Gassim, aged 18, was reportedly arrested
          on 25 October 1993 outside his family home in south Khartoum by four armed
          plainclothed security officers. Baha'a Abul Gassim was the brother of
          Major Issam Abul Gassim, an army officer convicted of an attempted coup and
          executed in 1990. The arrest reportedly took place one day after Abul Gassim
          attended a meeting during which opposition was expressed to the Government's
          policies. It was alleged that armed security officials entered the house
          where the meeting was being held by force and violently broke up the gathering
          and beat those present. (5 November 1993)
          524. Sid Ahmad al-Hussein, Deputy Secretary General of the banned Democratic
          Unionist Party, was reportedly arrested by security officials at his home in
          Khartoum on 17 November 1993. His arrest allegedly took place a day after he
          had organized a meeting at Omdurman Ablia University during which he denounced
          policies of the current Government.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 110
          525. Abdalla Barakat, a prominent member of the Arisar order and supporter of
          the banned Umma Party, was reportedly arrested on 12 November in Omdurman.
          His arrest allegedly followed a speech in the Wad Nubawi mosque, in which he
          denounced the alleged rigging of elections in the Khartoum Students' Union.
          526. It was also reported that in November 1993, students protesting the said
          election results occupied buildings in the university and confronted security
          police attempting to confine them to the campus. Rioting ensued and over
          300 students were reportedly arrested. As of 16 November, 33 students
          were being held by security officials in a secret detention centre.
          (24 November 1993)
          Observations
          527. The Special Rapporteur appreciates the responses he has received from the
          Government in respect of some of the cases transmitted. The information
          available to him over the last two years tends nevertheless to be consistent
          with the view expressed in the interim report to the General Assembly of the
          Special Rapporteur charged with reporting on the situation of human rights
          in the Sudan that systematic torture occurs in the country (A/48/601,
          paras. 41-50, 98)
          Syria
          Urgent appeals
          528. On 1 September 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of Hassiba ‘Abd al-Rahman, who was reportedly arrested on
          8 June 1993 at her home in Kafr al-Soussa, Damascus, allegedly on suspicion of
          having links with the banned Party for Communist Action. Since her arrest she
          had reportedly been held in incommunicado detention with no access to legal
          assistance. In these circumstances, fears were expressed that she might be
          subjected to torture or ill-treatment.
          Tadzhikistan
          Urgent appeals
          529. On 29 March 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of Mirbobo Mirrakhimov, former chairman of Tadzhikistan's
          state radio and television company; Akhmadsho Kamilov, former director of
          national television; Khayriddin Kasymov and Khurshed Nazarov, television
          journalists. It was reported that these persons fled Tadzhikistan after
          government forces entered Dushanbe on 10 December 1992, but were all detained
          in January 1993 by local police in neighbouring states (Mirbobo Mirrakhimov in
          Ashgabat, Turkmenistan, and Akhmadsho Kamilov, Khayriddin Kasymov and
          Khurshed Nazarov in Osh, Kyrgyzstan) and handed over to the Tadzhik
          authorities. They were all reportedly charged with “conspiracy to overthrow
          the Government using the mass information media”. According to the reports,
          they were being held at investigation-isolation prison ( Sledizolator or SIZO)
          No. 1 of the Ministry of Internal Affairs in Dushanbe and had been severely
          beaten during interrogation. As a result Khayriddin Kasymov had reportedly
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 111
          suffered a broken nose and jaw and had several teeth knocked out;
          Akhmadsho Kamilov had not been allowed to sleep or to sit for long periods.
          All four men had reportedly been denied access to medical treatment and to
          lawyers.
          530. Another urgent appeal was sent to the Government on 15 April 1993
          concerning Bozo Sobiron, a poet and, until November 1992, a leading member of
          the opposition Democratic Party, who was arrested on about 26 March 1993 at
          the airport of Dushanbe by procuracy officials. According to information
          received, he was being held at the investigation-isolation prison of the
          Ministry of Internal Affairs and had been denied access to his lawyer and
          family. Fears were expressed that he might be subjected to torture or
          ill-treatment.
          Thailand
          Urgent appeals
          531. On 25 June 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent un urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of Maung Maung Than and Par Pa, two Burmese refugees
          recognized by the United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees (UNHCR), who
          had allegedly been arrested by Thai security forces and were being held at the
          immigration detention centre in Bangkok. It was also reported that
          Maung Maung Than had been arrested in Bangkok on 19 May 1993 and severely
          beaten and Par Pa had been arrested some time after that. Fears were
          expressed that they might be subjected to torture or ill-treatment while in
          detention.
          532. On 8 July and 3 September 1993 the Government replied that in 1990 the
          Thai Cabinet had granted Myanmar students permission to stay temporarily in
          Thailand on humanitarian grounds on the condition that they did not engage in
          political activities while in Thailand. In 1992 the Government had
          established a safe area for Myanmar students which would provide them with
          adequate housing, food, medical care and access to education and training.
          The diplomatic community, UNHCR and private organizations in Thailand had been
          briefed on the humanitarian policy towards Myanmar students and details
          concerning the safe area; all of them agreed that this would provide the best
          protection and assistance to the Myanmar students under the prevailing
          circumstances. Despite the above-mentioned efforts, a number of Myanmar
          students had not applied to stay in the safe area and remained in hiding in
          Bangkok. A few groups of Myanmar students had made known their intention to
          engage in political activities against the Government of Myanmar while in
          Thailand. The Ministry of the Interior was therefore compelled to pursue the
          arrest of and to bring to trial on charges of illegal entry those Myanmar
          students who did not comply with the laws and regulations pertaining to the
          terms under which they could stay in Thailand. Maung Maung Than was reported
          to be a leader of the Overseas National Student Organization of Burma, which
          was engaged in activities against the Government of Myanmar and opposed the
          policy to establish the safe area. He was being held at the immigration
          detention centre on charges of illegal entry. On 13 July 1993 he had
          voluntarily decided to go to the safe area. With respect to the case of
          Par Pa, both the Ministry of the Interior and UNHCR had gone through the list
          of Myanmar students in Thailand, but had not been able to identify anyone
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 112
          under the name of Par Pa. On the other hand, immigration officials stated
          that they had not mistreated persons detained at the immigration detention
          centre. Moreover, UNI-ICR had been granted access to Myanmar nationals detained
          at the centre on a regular basis.
          Togo
          Urgent appeals
          533. On 6 May 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal to the
          Government on behalf of the following persons: Latévi Prosper Lawson,
          Late Jean Lawson, Jules Gagli, Rosali Gagli, Koffi Agbali, Sossouvi Afatchawo,
          Kossi Amedegounou, Koudjo Atsu, Kodzo Akakpo, Kossi Assignon,
          Alphonse Adjeovi, Agbévé Toyo, Komi Kpetigo, Sévi Sadi, Antoine Aboudou,
          Kossi Fiagnon, Folly Kuegan Yao Agbagnon, Tchassé Koumi Koffi Toyo,
          Ahamadou Boukari, Komi Hounkpati, Ekue Koulepato, Folly Ananou and
          Kokou Gakoto. According to the information received, these persons were
          arrested in Lomé several days after an attack on 25 March 1993 against the
          residence of President Gnassingbé Eyadéma. After their arrest, they were
          reportedly taken to the premises of the Lomé gendarmerie, where they were
          allegedly tortured.
          534. With respect to this case the Government informed the Special Rapporteur
          that an investigation was being conducted in order to establish the
          responsibility of the above-mentioned persons in the attack carried out
          against the “Camp du Regiment Interarmes Togolais” . Latévi Prosper Lawson,
          Jules Gagli, Kossi Amedegounou, Kodjo Akakpo, Kossi Assignon, Antoine Aboudou,
          Ekué Prosper Koulepato, Folly Arianou and Folly Kuegan had, however, been
          released from detention. Rosalie Gagli had been released on probation.
          Alphonse Adjeoui, Agbévé Toyo, Kossi Fiagnon and Sossouvi Afatchauo had been
          arrested on theft charges. Komi Kpetigo was charged with drug trafficking and
          Jean Late was not known to the police or the gendarmerie.
          535. The Government reply was transmitted to the source, which confirmed that
          most of the civilians arrested had subsequently been released. It observed,
          however, that the Togolese authorities did not appear to provide any response
          to allegations that those arrested were subjected to torture or ill-treatment,
          nor to have opened or carried out any investigation into those allegations.
          536. On 3 September 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent an urgent appeal
          concerning a group of about 40 persons said to have been arrested on
          26 August 1993 by the security forces in Agbandi and Diguine (central Togo) in
          connection with the disturbances which took placed after the results of the
          presidential election were announced. The detainees were allegedly beaten at
          the time of their arrest and then taken to the Blitta gendarmerie, where they
          were all locked into a cell designed to hold five prisoners. The next day,
          15 of them were reportedly found dead, and four others were alleged to have
          died later. It was also reported that about 20 of the detainees were
          transferred to the Char prison in northern Togo. Fears were expressed that
          they might be subjected to torture or ill-treatment.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 113
          537. Another urgent appeal was sent to the Government, on 7 October 1993, on
          behalf of Kokou Okesson Mbooura, a teacher in Kétao, reportedly arrested on
          27 August 1993 in Blitta while trying to locate a member of his family
          arrested the previous day in connection with the disturbances that broke out
          in Agbandi at the end of August. He was allegedly being held incommunicado at
          the Kara gendarmerie in the north of the country and fears were expressed that
          he might be tortured or ill-treated.
          538. On 13 October 1993 the Government informed the Special Rapporteur that
          some people had been arrested at Agbandi on 26 August 1993 for having damaged
          electoral equipment and had been taken to the Brigade de Gendarmerie in
          Blitta. Kokou Okesson Mboura was one of the persons who visited the
          detainees. Also on 26 August some of them had been poisoned after eating food
          provided by visitors. Kokou Okesson Mboura had been arrested as he was
          delivering food containing syringes to one detainee. According to the report
          made by a toxicologist the syringes contained a very dangerous poison. The
          judicial authorities of Sokode had issued an order of detention against him
          and he had been taken to the civil prison in Kara. He had never complained
          before the judge about ill-treatment and received regular visits from his
          wife. He could also have access to his lawyer. The latter, however, had not
          yet asked the judge for permission to see his client.
          539. In the light of the response provided by the Government the source stated
          that, without disputing the findings of the police laboratory, its main
          concern arose from the fact that no autopsies were carried out on the bodies
          of those who died, either to investigate allegations of torture or to
          establish the cause of death. The Government reply did not contain any
          response to allegations that the detainees died as a result of torture,
          ill-treatment and asphyxiation after 40 of them were crammed into a small
          cell. No inquiry into these serious allegations appeared to have been carried
          out.
          Tunisia
          Urgent appeals
          540. During the period under review the Special Rapporteur sent three urgent
          appeals to the Government which are described in the following paragraphs.
          The dates on which they were sent appear in parentheses at the end of the
          corresponding summaries.
          541. Abderrazak Hamzaoui, a student at the University of Tunis, was reportedly
          arrested on 19 September 1992 in the Ben Arous district of Tunis and taken to
          the Kasserine police station, where he was allegedly tortured and denied
          access to his family and lawyer. Concern was expressed for his health since
          he was said to have suffered osteomyelitis as a child, which had left him with
          weakened bones in his left leg. (18 December 1992)
          542. On 28 January 1993 the Government replied that Abderrazak Hamzaoui had
          been arrested under suspicion of being a militant member of an unauthorized
          association that advocated violence and holding illegal meetings. The
          Department of the Public Prosecutor had been informed, on the same day, of his
          arrest. During the investigation which followed, he had admitted that he
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 114
          belonged to the Al-Nahdah movement since 1986. On 1 November 1992, the Court
          had sentenced him to one year's imprisonment for membership of an illegal
          organization advocating violence, and to three months' imprisonment for
          holding illegal meetings. The Court had also ordered him to be placed under
          administrative supervision for two years. Mr. Hamzaoui had been granted all
          the legal guarantees necessary for his defence. He had not been subjected to
          torture and still less to ill-treatment while he was held in custody or during
          his detention. In addition, he had been given medical follow-up examinations
          through the prison and re-education services. His last medical examination
          had been on 7 January 1993. The certificate issued by the doctor afterwards
          stated that, as a child, Mr. Hamzaoui had had osteomyelitis, but that, at
          the time of the examination, he was suffering from no sickness or injury
          whatsoever.
          543. The Government added that Tunisia had espoused the cause of human rights.
          The country's achievements in this area were exemplary. The unfounded
          allegations brought by hostile parties would not in any way weaken this
          commitment or shake this determination to cooperate with the international
          organizations.
          544. Samir Moussa, a student abroad, was allegedly arrested on 25 July 1993
          on his arrival at Tunis airport. His family was able to visit him briefly
          while he was at the airport police station, where he was informed that it was
          a purely routine check and that he would soon be released. However, when the
          case was brought to the attention of the Special Rapporteur he was said to be
          still in police custody at an unknown place of detention. (23 August 1993)
          545. On 6 December 1993 the Government replied that Mr. Moussa had been
          released after 48 hours in detention. He had not been held incommunicado in
          an unknown place of detention and had not been subjected to ill-treatment.
          546. Mohamed Tahar Badi was reportedly arrested at his home in Deggache,
          Touzer, on 28 July 1993. Since then, he had allegedly been held in police
          custody without being able to contact his family. According to the
          information received, his two sons and his daughter had been convicted last
          year of belonging to an illegal organization, which is why Mr. Tahar Badi had
          allegedly been subjected to repeated interrogation. (23 August 1993)
          547. On 6 December 1993 the Government replied that Mr. Badi had been arrested
          on 25 August 1993 and released on the same day. He had not been held in
          custody for a long period and had not been subjected to ill-treatment.
          548. Salaheddine Zikikout, a student in Paris, was reported to have been
          arrested on 8 August 1993 on arriving at the port of Tunis. Since then,
          he had allegedly been held in police custody and his family had not been
          able to obtain information on his place of detention or his state of health.
          (13 September 1993)
          549. With respect to this case the Government informed the Special Rapporteur
          on 18 October 1993 that Salaheddine Zikikout had been arrested on the basis
          of a warrant issued by the Procurator-General for alleged membership of an
          unauthorized association that advocated violence and for illegal fund-raising.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 115
          He was detained in the civil prison of Tunis, where he could be visited by his
          family, and was being treated normally, in accordance with the 1988 prison
          regulations. The fears expressed in this regard were, therefore, unjustified.
          Turkey
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          550. By letter dated 29 October 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which persons
          suspected of both ordinary and politically motivated crimes were routinely
          tortured in police interrogation centres throughout the country while being
          held in incommunicado detention. Despite legal provisions granting that
          detainees should have immediate access to attorneys in practice lawyers were
          usually denied such visits. It was also reported that, according to the law,
          ordinary criminal suspects could be detained for 24 hours for individual
          crimes and for up to 8 days for collective crimes before being brought before
          a court; this period, however, was extended to 30 days in cases of political
          suspects in the region under emergency legislation. According to the sources
          these circumstances constituted a major factor in the continued use of torture
          and ill-treatment. The individual cases referred to in the following
          paragraphs were communicated to the Government.
          551. Soner Onder, a 17-year-old student, was arrested in Istanbul following an
          arson attack carried out in the name of the illegal Kurdish Workers' Party
          (PKK) on 25 December 1991 in Istanbul. He was reportedly taken to Istanbul
          police headquarters, where he was interrogated at the anti-terror branch until
          8 January 1992, when he was formally arrested by the Istanbul State Security
          Court and sent to Bayrampasa prison. It was also reported that although he
          had signed a confession stating that he was a member of an armed organization
          and that he was responsible for several crimes he did so while he was
          blindfolded and without knowledge of its contents because he had been
          subjected to torture, including falaka (beating the soles of the feet)
          electric shocks, hanging by the arms and squeezing the testicles.
          552. Mehmet Gôkalp, representative of the Human Rights Association in Derik,
          was among a group of persons arrested following the funeral in Derik on
          25 February 1992 of a member of PKK. He was taken to the Derik gendarmerie
          where he was alleged to have been hung up by his wrists with his arms tied
          behind his back, given electric shocks and hosed with water.
          553. Servet Sayan was reportedly subjected to torture while being interrogated
          in March 1992 at the Second (Criminal) Branch of Istanbul police headquarters.
          Methods included suspension by the arms and being beaten on the testicles with
          a stick. After the family had lodged a formal complaint to the public
          prosecutor in April 1992, two members were threatened by the police.
          554. Kadir Kurt was arrested on 19 April 1992 in Birik village, district
          of Bismil near Diyarbakir, and taken for interrogation to the gendarmerie
          battalion headquarters where he died the same night due to internal bleeding
          caused by pressure on the lungs from a broken sternum. His brother,
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 116
          Davud Kurt, was also allegedly tortured; his hand and a number of ribs were
          broken. He reportedly stated that his brother had been subjected to torture,
          by means of a truncheon that was inserted into his anus.
          555. Ramazan Sat was arrested on 24 March 1992 in Batman and interrogated
          for 12 days at Batman police headquarters on suspicion of harbouring members
          of PKK. He was reportedly subjected to torture by being beaten, stripped of
          his clothes, his arms tied to an iron pole and hoisted into the air; his body
          was reportedly soaked with water and electric shocks applied to his toes and
          penis, and he was hung by his wrists tied behind his back.
          556. Saadik Cilik, Nuray Erdem, Mehmet Karabulut, Nurdan Odabas, Serdar Akat,
          Attila Sabanci, Fatma Ciçek (female) , Latif Tiftikçi, Nun Eryüksel,
          Etem Elma, Siral Demiral and Ayçe Erdem, artists working at the Ortakôy
          cultural centre in Istanbul, were arrested, apparently without reason being
          given, on 24 August 1992 at 9 p.m. in Eregli, near Zongdulak, and remained
          incommunicado at the anti-terror branch of the political police in Zongdulak
          until 2 September 1992. During that time they were reportedly subjected to
          several methods of torture, including hanging by the wrists or arms and
          electric shocks. Fatma Ciçek was reportedly subjected to falaka .
          557. Fatma Gülten Sesen (female, owner of Mücadele newspaper and President of
          the Istanbul Branch of Prisoners' Families Solidarity Association (TAYAD)),
          Sultan Celik (female) , Ufuk Demirkaya, Solmaz Tartar (president of the
          Istanbul Ôzgür-Der), Gülay Tan, Yasa Güzel (secretary-general of Malatya
          Ozgür-Der) and Ayten Celik were arrested on 24 August 1992 between 4.30 and
          S a.m. in Karatas near Adana, apparently without reason being given, and taken
          to the Adana police station. They were alleged relatives of people working
          with Ôzgür-Der (Association of Rights and Freedom) or TAYAD. Before they were
          released on 30 August 1992 by the Adana's Prosecutor's Office, they were
          reportedly subjected to hanging by the wrists or arms, electric shocks, falaka
          and to being made to lay down on blocks of ice.
          558. Ihsan Kurt was arrested on 11 October 1992 while taking photographs on
          behalf of his newspaper, Ozgür Gündem , in Adana at the funeral of a killed PKK
          guerilla. He was reportedly held incommunicado from 11 to 19 October 1992 in
          Adana police headquarters, during which time he was subjected to several
          methods of torture, including being beaten with truncheons, sticks or the
          butts of guns, kicked and punched.
          559. In the course of an operation carried out by the security forces
          on 20 February 1993 in the village of Ormaniçi, near Güçlükonak, in the
          province of Sirnak, most of the male villagers were tied together, blindfolded
          and marched into the town of Güçlükonak several kilometres away, where they
          were kept on a construction site near the gendarmerie headquarters for
          12 days. They were reportedly stripped naked for interrogation in
          temperatures frequently well below zero and subjected to various forms of
          torture. It was alleged that they were hosed with cold water, raped with
          truncheons and bottles, in some cases toenails and fingernails were pulled out
          with pliers and excrement was mixed with their food. Water was allegedly
          poured on the concrete floor as a result of which the villagers' bare feet,
          already injured by falaka , were frozen to the floor where they stood and their
          sides also froze when they lay down to sleep. Many of them suffered from
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 117
          severe frostbite, which subsequently became gangrenous. As a result
          Ibrahim Ekin's big toes had to be amputated; a large proportion of
          Resul Aslan's feet had to be amputated; 17-year-old Fahrettin Ozkan had to
          have all his toes amputated; Mehmet Tahil Ceten's leg was amputated from the
          knee down in Diyarbakir State Hospital. Osman Ekincy was reportedly subjected
          to electric shocks and his toes were crushed with pliers. Hüseyin Yilairim
          was reportedly forced to eat human excrement, drink urine and petrol and,
          while he was bound, his hands and feet were burned.
          560. Dr. Hassan Kaya and Meten Can, a lawyer and president of the Elazig
          branch of the Human Rights Association, disappeared on 21 February 1993 in
          Elazig after Mr. Can had received a telephone call from an alleged policeman
          telling him that one of his clients was involved in a car accident and that he
          should report right away to a police station. Dr. Kaya accompanied him. They
          were both found dead on 27 February 1993 near the town of Tunceli. Both
          bodies reportedly bore signs of torture and mutilation; their hands were bound
          behind their backs with wire, there were marks of cigarette burns, Dr. Kaya's
          eyes were gouged out and there was evidence of use of electric shock on
          Mr. Can.
          561. Ibrahim Dicek was arrested on 20 March 1993 in the village of Baristepe
          in Mardin province and 10 days later his body was found in a well. The
          prosecutor's report allegedly stated that there were marks of beating with the
          intention of torture covering the entire body, as well as rope marks on both
          arms consistent with being dragged; the anal area was torn, suggesting that a
          hard object had been inserted as a method of torture. The autopsy allegedly
          revealed that the causes of death were respiratory and circulatory failures
          brought about by a blow on the head with a blunt object.
          562. Gülan Yavuz, a female student at Ankara University, was among a large
          group of persons arrested at the Ekin arts centre in Ankara on 18 April 1993
          under suspicion of membership of the illegal armed organization Devrimci Sol.
          She was reportedly taken to the Istanbul police headquarters, where she was
          allegedly soaked with pressurized cold water, beaten on the sole of the feet,
          sexually assaulted, suspended by the arms and given electric shocks.
          563. Irfan Ortakci was arrested in the same circumstances as Gülan Yavuz.
          He was said to have been twice hung by the arms with the hands tied behind the
          back and hosed with cold and hot water. His sexual organ was pulled, squeezed
          and flicked.
          564. Tülay Cakmak, a female high school student, was arrested together with
          the two above-mentioned persons. She was allegedly hung, given electric
          shocks and sprayed with cold water. Another female student, Eylem Kaya, was
          beaten, soaked with water and threatened that they would do things to her to
          make her incapable of having children.
          565. Hasan Durna, Cafer Oral, Ayhan Uzala and Nurettin Topuz were arrested
          on 6 May 1993 in Istanbul on suspicion of membership of an illegal armed
          organization. They were reportedly held in incommunicado detention for
          14 days, during which time they were subjected to several methods of torture,
          including electric shocks and being hoisted off the ground by their wrists,
          which were tied behind their backs.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 118
          566. Mehmet Kiran was arrested on 17 June 1993 by soldiers in the village of
          Atala, near Mazidagi, in the province of Mardin, and taken to the gendarmerie
          station in Derik for interrogation. As a result of the treatment to which he
          was subjected one of his arms was broken.
          567. On 21 June 1993, in the village of Orasar, near Cinar, province of
          Diyarbakir, soldiers and special team members reportedly assaulted male and
          female villagers, made them lie down, face to the ground and told them they
          would die if they moved. Then they allegedly started hitting them with the
          butts of their weapons, cigarettes were stubbed out on them and electrical
          cables attached to the armoured vehicles were used to give electrical shocks.
          This treatment reportedly continued all day.
          568. Siddik Katan was arrested at Gümüsôrgü village, near Kozluk, Batman, in
          July 1993 and held for 14 days at the police headquarters. As a result of the
          torture to which he was said to have been subjected one of his feet was
          broken.
          Urgent appeals
          569. In addition, the Special Rapporteur sent 17 urgent appeals on behalf of
          persons who, according to the information received, were at risk of being
          tortured. Summaries of these appeals are reproduced below. The dates on
          which the appeals were sent are mentioned in parentheses at the end of the
          corresponding summary.
          570. Kamil Mustak, Bahattin Mustak, Mehmet Mustak, Abdullah Madak (aged 65),
          Ahmet Baglan, Mehmet Baglan, Cafer Dir Mahmut Din and Mehmet Din
          were allegedly arrested on 17 February 1993 in the village of Yesilyurt,
          province of Sirnak, by soldiers carrying out police duties, accompanied by
          plain-clothed police, who surrounded the village and searched the houses for
          guns. (29 March 1993)
          571. With respect to the cases of Kamil Mustak, Bahattin Mustak and
          Abdullah Madak the Government replied that they had been arrested on
          suspicion of having links with the terrorist organization PKK. Under a
          letter of authorization from the Procurator's Office of Cizre, they had
          been kept in custody until 3 March 1993, when they had been brought before
          the Procurator of Cizre. The Cizre Procurator had referred them to the
          magistrate's court of Cizre, which, after cross-examination, had decided to
          release them. Subsequently, the Procurator's Office of the Court of National
          Security at Diyarbakir had decided that there were no grounds for instituting
          proceedings.
          572. With respect to the cases of Ahmet Baglan, Mehmet Baglan, Cafer Din
          and Mehmet Din the Government replied that they had been arrested and taken
          into custody following a police operation in the village of Yesilyurt, Cizre.
          They had been kept in custody until 1 March 1993 under authorization of the
          Procurator's Office of Cizre. They had appeared before the Procurator of
          Cizre on 1 March 1993 and had been referred to the magistrates' court of Cizre
          with a request for their committal to prison. After cross-examination, the
          court had decided to place the four suspects in detention on a charge of
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 119
          belonging to PKK and engaging in activities on its behalf and providing it
          with assistance. On 2 March 1993 the file had been transmitted by the
          magistrate's court to the Court of National Security of Diyarbakir. The four
          suspects had been released on 19 April 1993 and on the same day the Court had
          decided to acquit them.
          573. As for Mehmet Mustak, the Government stated that he had appeared before
          the Procurator of Cizre on 17 March 1993 and been referred that day to the
          magistrate's court of Mardin, which had decided to detain him and had
          transmitted the file to the Procurator's Office of the Court of National
          Security of Diyarbakir. On completion of the procedure, the Procurator's
          Office had initiated public proceedings on a charge of “belonging to the
          terrorist organization PKK” . The case was continuing, although the suspect
          had been released on 4 May 1993.
          574. Hasan Durna, Cafer Oral, Gültekin Gôlçek, Ozcan Ozgen, Saime Bôlügiray
          (female), Düzgün Gôk, Nurettin Topuz and Ayhan Uzala were arrested in a
          police operation in Istanbul starting on 22 April 1993 and were being held
          incommunicado, without access to their lawyers, at the anti-terror branch of
          Istanbul police headquarters. The prosecutor had reportedly given the police
          permission to hold the detainees in custody until 7 May. (4 May 1993)
          575. Cahide Sener and Murat Sener were allegedly arrested by the police
          on 12 June 1993 at Yildiz bakal, Samfistik sok, Birlik appartman 2,
          Istanbul. They were reportedly in custody at the Gayret Tepe prison,
          Terôrle Mucadele Sube and, according to witnesses, they had seriously been
          tortured. (15 June 1993)
          576. On 29 October 1993 the Government replied that these persons had been
          released on 24 and 26 June respectively. They had never filed a complaint
          alleging that they had been tortured.
          577. Aysu Baykal (female), Mehmet Ali Beyhan and Sevinç Sahingôz: the first
          two persons were reportedly arrested on 5 June 1993 by the police in the
          Sincan district of Ankara, whereas Sevinç Sahingôz was brought to Ankara from
          Yozgat. They were all reported to be held at the anti-terror branch of Jthkara
          police headquarters, and the State Security Court Prosecutor had given
          permission for the detainees to be held until 18 June. They were allegedly
          being held incommunicado without access to legal counsel. (17 June 1993)
          578. With respect to these cases the Government replied that these persons had
          been arrested under suspicion of having links with terrorist groups. After
          interrogation the judicial authorities had issued an order of detention
          against Mehmet Ali Bayhan and Aysu Baykal and released Sevinc Sahingôz.
          While in custody, they had never been subjected to ill-treatment.
          579. Türkan Balaban, Gülay Yücel, Meral Yücel, Zeynep Arikan, Necla Can,
          Ilker Alcan, Tuncer Bagdatlioglu, Fatma Gülten Sesen, Kamil Gülbag,
          Kudret Sarigül, Ethem Elma, Ali Ibrahim Soganci, Meltem Onder, Solmaz Artat,
          Mehmet Demir, Kemal Isik, Tank Tolnay and Savas Dôrtyol were reportedly
          arrested in a police operation in Istanbul on the afternoon of 21 June 1993.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 120
          It was reported that the prosecutor's office had granted permission to hold
          them for 15 days. Ethem Elma, Savas Dôrtyol, Methem Onder and Gülay Yücel
          were reported to be in very bad condition as a result of heavy torture.
          (5 July 1993)
          580. On 16 August 1993 the Government replied that on 21 June 1993, the
          office of the weekly paper Devrimci Côzüm had been attacked by five armed
          unidentified persons. During the attack, Cafer Giritli, Ozgür Akbulut,
          Nurcan Güzel, Erkan Yalçin, Gülay Kahraman and Onder Dursun who were in the
          office, had been injured. There had been an inquiry into the incident and
          police operations had been started. During these operations, the suspects
          mentioned in the appeal had been arrested and placed in police custody. After
          being interrogated, they had been released by the court authority. It had
          been established that, while in police custody, the persons in question had
          not been subjected to any form of ill-treatment.
          581. Ramazan Kiran, his father Mehmet Kiran, Vahap Celik and Izzetin Celik
          were reportedly arrested in the village of Atala near Mazidagi in the province
          of Mardin on 17 June and taken to the gendarmerie station at Derik for
          interrogation. It was reported that Mehmet Kiran was transferred to
          Diyarbakir State Hospital when his condition deteriorated and his arm was
          broken, allegedly as the result of torture. (5 July 1993)
          582. With respect to these cases the Government replied that Mehmet Kiran,
          Vahap Celik and Izzettin Celik had not been taken into custody. Ramazan Kiran
          and Adbulvahap Ceri had been arrested on 14 June 1993 and taken into custody
          by the Mardin gendarmerie. Under questioning, Ramazan Kiran had confessed to
          his participation inter alia in the activities of the terrorist organization
          PKK, in a murder and in the armed attack on the house of the mayor of the
          village of Atalar. Ramazan Kiran and Abdulvahap Ceri had been brought before
          the judicial authorities on 8 July 1993 and placed in detention in Mardin
          prison by judicial decision. They had not been subjected to any form of
          ill-treatment or torture while in custody and the proceedings had been
          conducted in accordance with the law.
          583. Ramazan Malgir, Hasan Temiz, Nurettin Temiz and Halef Bortas were among
          the villagers arrested on 21 June 1993, during a raid by the security forces
          on the village of Ortasar, in the province of Diyarbakir. Two of the
          villagers who were released the following day reportedly returned to the
          village in very bad condition, allegedly as a result of torture. The
          remaining detainees were said to be held in incommunicado detention at the
          Diyarbakir gendarmerie headquarters, and fears were expressed that they might
          be interrogated under torture. (5 July 1993)
          584. With regard to these cases the Government replied that these persons had
          been taken into custody under suspicion of carrying out activities on behalf
          of PKK and of helping that organization. The Court of National Security,
          before which they were brought, had decided to place them in detention.
          They had not been subjected to any form of ill-treatment or torture and the
          proceedings had been conducted in accordance with the law. No one else had
          been taken into custody following the operations in question.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 121
          585. Mehmet Keklik was reportedly arrested by the police on 27 May 1993 in
          Alçiçekkôyü (his native village, close to Elbistan) , along with six other
          persons from neighbouring villages. He was being held at the State security
          prison at Malatiya (Devlet Güvenlik Mahkemesi) . A relative who was able to
          see him allegedly reported that Mehmet Keklik had been so badly tortured that
          his face was difficult to recognize. (13 July 1993)
          586. Nezahat Ozmen, correspondent for the Ozgür Gündem newspaper, was detained
          on 16 July 1993 in Mardin. According to the reports, on 19 July 1993 she had
          to be transferred to hospital as a result of the ill-treatment she had
          suffered while in detention, in spite of being seven months pregnant. The
          police reportedly came to the hospital and insisted that she be taken before a
          judge and formally arrested, although she was in need of continuing medical
          treatment. She was then committed to Mardin prison. (2 August 1993)
          587. On 22 September 1993 the Government replied that Nezahat Ozmen had been
          taken into police custody on 19 July 1993 for making unfounded accusations and
          for offensive and insulting behaviour towards the police. A statement had
          been taken from her, and the same day she had appeared before the Government
          Procurator, who had immediately referred her to the magistrates' court at
          Mardin. By decision of 19 July 1993, the court had ruled that she should be
          placed in detention. Before being brought before the judicial authorities,
          Nezahat Ozmen had undergone two medical examinations, followed by reports on
          her state of health. According to these medical reports there were no traces
          of blows or wounds on her person and she made no mention of any ailment.
          After her statement was taken on 19 July 1993, she had said that she was
          six or seven months pregnant, whereupon she had been taken to the appropriate
          doctor. Her situation having been taken into consideration, she had been
          brought before the court that same day.
          588. Ahmet Ibili, correspondent for the weekly newspaper Mücadele in Mersin,
          was reportedly arrested when the police raided the office of the newspaper on
          18 August 1993. Ahmet Ibili was said to have resisted and, in response, to
          have had his head hit against the floor until he lost consciousness. He was
          reportedly taken to the Mersin police headquarters where, according to
          witnesses, he was being subjected to severe torture and death threats and he
          was being denied water. (1 September 1993)
          589. On 23 November 1993 the Government replied that this person had been
          taken into custody on 17 August 1993. After being interrogated the judicial
          authorities had issued an order of detention against him. Medical reports
          indicated that he had not been submitted to torture while in custody.
          590. Abdullah Ay and Semsettin Ay, from Kelekçi village; Mehmet Tekin,
          Omer tJnal and Mecit Memiç from Kayikli village: according to the reports,
          on 27 July 1993, village guards and the security forces set fire to houses in
          Kelekçi, Günegli and Kayikli near Dargeçit, province of Mardin, on the border
          with Syria. This was reportedly done in retaliation for the villagers'
          refusal to take up arms as village guards. The villagers were then driven
          away, but returned later and tried to rebuild their villages. On 30 August,
          village guards from neighbouring Altinoluk came again to these villages, with
          a team from the gendarmerie (soldiers carrying out police duties in rural
          areas) , gathered the inhabitants together and told them to leave, threatening,
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 122
          if they refused, to destroy all houses and kill those found still living
          there. They then took away the five people mentioned above. Omer tJnal was
          reportedly being held in the house of the head of the village guards and the
          others in the school of Altinoluk village, under the surveillance of the
          gendarmerie team. It was also reported that they were all being subjected to
          torture. (14 September 1993)
          591. The following persons were reported to be held in incommunicado detention
          at the anti-terror branch of Istanbul police headquarters:
          (a) Memik I-Ioroz and his wife Sezemis were reportedly arrested in
          Istanbul on 17 September 1993 at the office of the political magazine,
          Partizan . Reportedly, Sezemis I-Ioroz' arm was broken when she was being
          detained.
          (b) Ismail Yilmaz, Ulku Daricioglu and Ethem Cilgin were allegedly
          arrested at their homes in Istanbul on the same day. Ahmet and Mehmet Polat
          were allegedly taken into custody on 20 September, also at their homes in
          Istanbul.
          (c) Fethiye Peksen, Alisan Yalçin, Harun Kartal, Ibrahim Dogus,
          Ozlem Bilgin, Erkan Koç, Yesim Taciroglu, Perihan Sürücü, Mehmet Emin
          Yildirim, Kamil Kayan, Erdogan Aktas, Bekir Yazici, Aydin Yigit, Kemal Metin
          Sôzeri, Murat Urekrsoy, Ercan Yesil, Yusuf Büyükdag and Sevim Yagan. These
          18 persons were reportedly arrested during police operations in Istanbul which
          started on 17 September 1993. They were accused of being members of the
          illegal armed organization Devrimci Sol. (30 September 1993)
          592. On 26 November 1993 the Government replied that Fethiye Peksen
          and 16 others had been arrested and taken into custody in the context of
          police operations carried out in Istanbul against the terrorist organization
          THKP/C-dev-Sol. Subsequently, the judicial authorities had decided to keep
          14 of them in detention and release the other three. They had neither been
          subjected to ill-treatment nor prevented from having contacts with their
          relatives and lawyers.
          593. Information was also received on the arrest of the following nine
          persons, reported to be held in incommunicado detention at the police
          headquarters in Van, eastern Turkey: Rukiye Seker, Sevda Seker, Ercan Seker,
          Adnan Seker, Sevket Aslan, Bans Karaagar and Iskender Elter. They were
          all reportedly arrested at their homes on 14 September 1993. Fuat Atalay
          and Cahit Ece were both reportedly arrested as they left work on
          17 September 1993. (30 September 1993)
          594. With respect to these nine persons the Government replied
          on 26 November 1993 that they had been arrested and taken into custody
          on 18 September 1993 on suspicion of giving assistance to PKK, killing under
          the name of this organization and attempting to set a school on fire. After
          their interrogation they had been brought before the judicial authorities
          who had decided to keep Boris Karagar, Sevket Aslan, Iskender Elter,
          Fuat Talay and Cahit Ece in detention. Medical reports indicated that
          they had not been ill-treated while in police custody.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 123
          595. Behçet Ekinci was arrested at his home in Diyarbakir
          on 21 September 1993, by officers from the anti-terror branch of Diyarbakir
          police headquarters. Police officers reportedly occupied the house during the
          following three days and detained everyone who visited. The following night,
          around the same time, the police reportedly brought Behçet Ekinci back to his
          home, covered in blood and bruises. They searched the house for explosives
          but found nothing and took Behçet Ekinci back to police headquarters.
          (4 October 1993)
          596. Nilufer Koç, a Kurdish interpreter of Turkish origin, resident in
          Germany: on 25 September 1993 she reportedly travelled to Turkey with four
          colleagues from an information service in Bremen to act as interpreter for
          them while they carried out research in the south-eastern provinces of Turkey.
          On 29 September they were reportedly arrested by security forces in Uludere,
          Sirnak province, and kept overnight in the house of a village guard. The
          following day they were reportedly escorted back to Sirnak in a military
          convoy and held, first by the police and then by the gendarmerie. At this
          point Nilufer Koç was separated from her colleagues, who were subsequently
          released. According to the reports, Nilufer Koç was being held in the
          gendarmerie headquarters in Sirnak. (8 October 1993)
          597. Kerim Yilmaz, Nurettin Aslan, Onder Dilek and Ahmet Günes were reportedly
          taken from their homes in Elazig on 2 October 1993 by police and members of
          the “special team” (heavily armed police used in anti-insurgent operations)
          They were said to be held at the Binsekizyüz Evler police interrogation unit
          in Elazig. Family members were reportedly refused access to the detainees.
          (14 October 1993)
          598. On 26 November 1993 the Government replied that Ahmet Günes and
          Kerim Yilmaz had been arrested on 28 September and 2 October 1993 respectively
          under accusation of collaboration with PKK. The judicial authorities had
          ordered their release on 6 October 1993. While in custody, they had neither
          been subjected to ill-treatment nor prevented from having contacts with their
          families.
          599. Mehmet Sirin Ogünç, Hakim Ogünç, Zeki Ogünç, Hüseyin Ugurlu, Sami Duygu
          and Hüsamettin Duygu: according to the reports, on 2 October 1993 gendarmes
          from the Gôkyazi security post raided a district of Altinova, province of Mus,
          where a wounded PKK guerrilla was thought to be sheltered. An exchange of
          fire occurred in which the wounded guerrilla and a gendarme were killed. The
          security forces left the area but returned at about 3 a.m. on 3 October and
          burned a number of houses. The male population was assembled on vacant land
          below the town and addressed by a gendarmerie officer who abused them before
          taking away the persons mentioned above. (14 October 1993)
          600. It was reported that in the early hours of 20 October 1993, officers of
          the anti-terror branch of the Sanliurf a police detained Mehmet Caki, a board
          member of Democracy Party (DEP) in Viransehir, his wife Saime and their
          five-month-old baby, together with Mehmet Delen, a visitor to their house in
          Viransehir. The following day, Mehmet Delen and Saime Caki were released and
          expressed concern that Mehmet Caki was being tortured, since Saime Caki had
          heard her husband's screaming. Two other former detainees reported seeing
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 124
          Mehmet Caki at the police headquarters; his face was apparently swollen,
          he had marks on his hands and face, and appeared very exhausted.
          (29 October 1993)
          601. Meral Bestas Danis, Mesut Bestas, Sabahattin Acar, Baki Demirhan,
          Hüsniynie Olmez, Sinasi Tur and Arif Altinkalem, all lawyers who collaborate
          with the Human Rights Association in Diyarbakir, were arrested on 15 and
          16 November 1993. They were reportedly being held incommunicado in police
          custody. (19 November 1993)
          602. Omer Celik, Hüseyin Ogurlu, Cemil Ogüt, Ethem Baysak and Abdurahman Elçi
          were arrested on the night of 18 November in Altinova, province of Mus,
          south-east Turkey, by members of the security forces. Another inhabitant,
          Mahfuz Elçi, arrested at the same time, was released a few hours later after
          having been tortured. (24 November 1993)
          603. In addition to the lawyers mentioned in the appeal of 19 November 1993,
          the Special Rapporteur received further information adding the names of
          two other lawyers: Vedat Erten and Tahir Elçi (from Cizre) . In addition,
          a third lawyer, Niyazi Cem was alleged to have been arrested by members
          of the anti-terror police of the State Security Court of Istanbul on
          23 November 1993. (30 November 1993)
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          604. On 19 November 1992 the Special Rapporteur made an urgent appeal on
          behalf inter alia of Celal Meral, Ziya Ulusoyl and Mehmet Ustundaj, reported
          to have been arrested in Istanbul in November 1992. On 11 January 1993 the
          Government informed the Special Rapporteur that they had been arrested,
          together with 19 others on S November 1992, during operations carried out in
          Istanbul against the terrorist organization TKP/C. After their interrogation,
          seven of them, including those listed above, had been imprisoned, on
          20 November 1992, and the other 15 released by decision of the court before
          which they had been brought. They had not been subjected to any ill-treatment
          whatsoever while they were in police custody.
          605. On 12 January 1993 the Government replied to the cases referred to
          in the following paragraphs, transmitted by the Special Rapporteur on
          16 September 1992.
          606. Mehmet Rauf Yildz, Murat Günes, Ibrahim Burakmat and Mehmet Hanifi Eser
          were reportedly arrested on 3 November 1991 in Diyarbakir. According to the
          Government they were placed in police custody on 12 November 1991 on suspicion
          of engaging in activities for the terrorist organization PKK. The medical
          report of the forensic physician certified that they were in good health.
          607. Mithat Kutlu allegedly died while in custody in Diyarbakir
          on 18 April 1992. According to the Government, he was seriously injured
          when he was crushed in a crowd, during an illegal demonstration in Bismil
          on 18 April 1992. He died as a result of his injuries at the Diyarbakir
          hospital where he had been taken. An autopsy report had been made.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 125
          608. Menice Kirtay was reportedly arrested in Mescit, Silvan, district of
          Diyarbakir, on 19 June 1992. According to the Government, no person by this
          name had ever been placed in police custody. Nor was there any record of any
          report having been made about this person by the Diyarbakir hospital.
          609. Sükrü Yilmaz, was reportedly arrested on 4 March 1992 in Sagosele,
          Besiri. According to the Government, after a medical examination on
          13 March 1992, the forensic physician of Besiri reported that he observed no
          signs of bodily injury. However, a report made on 14 March 1992, by the same
          forensic physician, indicated that there were bruises on his body. He had
          never made a complaint about his treatment.
          610. In the light of this reply the sources informed the Special Rapporteur
          that Sükru Yilmaz had submitted a very detailed complaint (copy of which was
          available) to the public prosecutor in Batman on 16 March 1992 describing his
          torture. However, he might have revised his statement for the Besiri
          prosecutor as a result of undue pressure.
          611. Bisenk Jthik, aged 16, allegedly died in police custody in Sirnak
          on 25 March 1992. According to the Government, she committed suicide with
          a firearm while she was in police custody.
          612. Sekvan Aytuq, allegedly detained in Sirnak on 14 May 1992: according to
          the Government, he was arrested at Sirnak on 25 May 1992. It was established
          that he was not subjected to any ill-treatment while he was in police custody,
          and that no one visited him during that time.
          613. Abdullah Arisoy, Sait Arisoy, Halil Arisoy, reportedly arrested in
          Cizre on 30 June 1992: according to the Government, they were under no
          circumstances subjected to ill-treatment while in police custody. They had
          spread these allegations in order to influence and deceive the court and
          public opinion.
          614. Ali Komak, Erdal Cecit, Ahmet Dagli, Jthdulkadir Bingôl,
          Abdurrahman Aksoy, Abülhamit Tanriverdi, Emin Sores, Mahmut Kirmizigül,
          Faruk Sakik, Abdullah Yasin, Salih Baykara, Yusuf Sen, Aziz Sen, Nimet Elki,
          Ihsan Ogan, arrested in Cizre in July 1992: according to the Government,
          they were arrested in Cizre for belonging to the terrorist organization PKK.
          On 4 July 1992, they were taken to Sirnak where they were held. Legal
          proceedings were initiated against them. Aksoy, Dagli, Cecit and Bingôl
          were released in Cizre on 8 July 1992.
          615. Yusufhan Zorba, Mehmet Sirin Zorba, Senar Turqut, Muhittin Aksin,
          Sakir Kanat, Cemal Kocak, Hüseyin Karakoyun, Sehmuz Karakoyun, Hayrettin Yacan
          and Salih Bagi allegedly arrested in Van in September 1991: according to the
          Government, the medical report made by the Mardin hospital indicated that
          these persons were not subjected to any ill-treatment or torture while they
          were in police custody. Furthermore, neither they nor their close relatives
          had filed any complaints with the courts to the effect that they were
          subjected to such practices.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 126
          616. Ibrahim Turk, reportedly arrested on 6 May 1991 in Bismil, Diyarbakir:
          according to the Government, the relevant medical report indicated that there
          were no signs of bodily injury.
          617. Erdogan Kizilkaya, reportedly arrested in Kayseri on 4 August 1991:
          according to the Government, the relevant medical report indicated that there
          was no ill-treatment.
          618. Fahri Tirpan, Haydar Emrah, Goskun Kilickaya, Bektas Ozkan, Ali Azkan,
          Gazi Koksal, Ali Haydar Emre and Ercan Karafas, reportedly arrested in Ankara
          on 10 January 1992: according to the Government, medical reports showed that
          none of these persons was subjected to any ill-treatment whatsoever during the
          time they spent in custody.
          619. Nazli Top, reportedly arrested in April 1992 in Istanbul: according to
          the Government, the report made by the Istanbul Institute of Forensic Medicine
          indicated that there were no signs of bodily injury.
          620. Omer Ozaslan, reportedly arrested on 1 May 1992 in Zonguldak: according
          to the Government, the medical report showed that he did not suffer any
          ill-treatment whatsoever during the time he spent in custody.
          621. Ismail Yilmaz, reportedly arrested on 27 June 1992 in Istanbul:
          according to the Government, on the basis of the complaints alleging that he
          was subjected to torture, legal proceedings were initiated against the three
          police officers at the Yedikule police station said to be involved.
          622. Hüseyin Aten and Salih Yilmaz, reportedly arrested in January 1991 in
          Bilican (Kavsakli) : according to the Government, the allegations of torture
          were not true. They had not been arrested on the alleged date and they were
          not known by the inhabitants of the Bilican village.
          623. Ali Kesan, aged 16, allegedly died in police custody in Diyarbakir in
          March 1992. According to the Government, the allegations of torture were
          baseless. He was not detained in Diyarbakir Closed Prison (E Type) and no
          person of this name had died at the said prison.
          624. Kadir Kurt, allegedly died in police custody in Diyarbakir-Bismil,
          province of Diyarbakir, on 19 April 1992. According to the Government, the
          allegations of torture were baseless. The person died with the fire from
          opened houses during the armed clashes with the PKK terrorist organization at
          Agilli village in Bismil district. The autopsy made at Diyarbakir state
          hospital revealed that he had been killed with a firearm. No signs of torture
          were encountered on his body.
          625. Abdulrakip (Refik) Akin, reportedly arrested in Korkut, province of Mus,
          on 29 January 1992. According to the Government, the allegations of torture
          were baseless. He had fallen and entered into shock without any intent or
          interference. He was treated at Mus and Elazig state hospitals and died after
          three days without coming out of the state of shock. The autopsy was effected
          by the Mus attorney-general. Death occurred because of trauma to the head due
          to the knock. No trace of torture was found on his body.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 127
          626. Mehmet Celik, was reportedly arrested in Batman-Kozluk, province of
          Batman, on 9 January 1992. According to the Government, he was arrested after
          he was identified as having given assistance and refuge to members of the PKK
          terrorist organization. He later admitted the facts and confessed that he had
          given his testimony without any pressure and that he regretted what he had
          done. A medical report issued on 13 October 1992 stated that no signs of
          force or strike had been found on his body.
          627. Hassan Güldal, reportedly died at the Artvin provincial gendarmerie
          command in June 1992. According to the Government, the allegations of torture
          were not true. He was a member of the TKP-ML-TIKKO terrorist organization.
          After being arrested, he began a hunger strike and died of a stomach
          haemorrhage. The autopsy was effected in the presence of the Artvin
          attorney general. No signs of torture had been found on his body.
          628. Tahir Seyhan, allegedly died on 11 April 1992 in Mardin-Dargecit,
          province of Mardin. According to the Government, the allegations of torture
          were baseless. After he had been identified as having created “people's
          courts” in the name of the PKK terrorist organization and given logistical
          support to the PKK terrorist organization, he was arrested. While in police
          custody, he fell intentionally on the concrete floor and knocked his head.
          He was brought to the state hospital under doctors' surveillance and a first
          medical intervention was effected. He died at Diyarbakir state hospital while
          under treatment. Following the autopsy made at Diyarbakir state hospital, it
          was identified that he died because of the trauma to his head due to the knock
          on the concrete surface. No signs of torture were found on his body.
          629. On 11 January 1993 the Government provided the Special Rapporteur with
          information on Law No. 3842 (CMUK), approved by the Turkish Grand National
          Assembly on 18 November 1992, which entered into force on 1 December 1992.
          This law reportedly amended some provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure
          and the Law on Establishment and Prosecution Procedures of the State Security
          Courts. It also abolished some provisions of the Law on Police Duties and
          Powers and the Anti-Terror Law. According to the Government, the law
          contained effective measures for the prevention of torture and ill-treatment
          and introduced important amendments with respect to the right of defence.
          Observations
          630. The Special Rapporteur welcomes recent amendments to the law which could
          go some way to alleviating the problem of torture in respect of persons
          suspected of ordinary crime and outside zones where a state of emergency
          obtains. The Special Rapporteur is also mindful of the difficulties faced by
          the authorities as a result of the violent and often brutal acts of PKK and
          other armed opposition groups. Nevertheless, the information available to the
          Special Rapporteur and his predecessor over many years gives grounds for
          concern, in the words of the findings of an inquiry conducted by the
          Committee against Torture acting under article 20 of the Convention against
          Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment,
          about “the existence and systematic character of the practice of torture”
          (A/48/44/Add.1, para. 58) in Turkey. He also shares the Committee's hope that
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 128
          the Government of Turkey “will take peaceful and effective measures in order
          rapidly to end the practice of torture” (ibid., para. 59) . To this end, the
          Special Rapporteur limits himself to commending the various recommendations
          contained throughout the summary account of the Committee's inquiry.
          Information submitted by the Government in connection with Commission
          resolution 1993/4 8
          631. By note verbale dated 15 November 1993 the Government sent to the various
          special rapporteurs and working groups of the Commission six information notes
          concerning terrorist acts perpetrated by the Kurdish Workers' Party (PKK),
          according to which, between 1 January and 15 October 1993, 879 persons,
          including 107 women and 104 children had been assassinated during attacks
          against the civilian population. In addition, 889 persons, including
          129 women and 71 children, had been severely injured during those attacks.
          The information notes also contained a number of detailed accounts of such
          incidents.
          Yugoslavia
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          632. On 18 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur brought to the attention of
          the Government of the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia information he had
          received regarding the case of Vuk Draskovic, President of the Serbian Renewal
          Movement, and his wife Danica Draskovic, reported to have been severely beaten
          following their arrest by the police in Belgrade on 1 June 1993. A team of
          professors from Belgrade University Medical Faculty reportedly examined them
          in the week beginning 14 June and concluded that Vuk Draskovic was suffering
          from headaches, disrupted balance, amnesia and impaired hearing, all pointing
          to brain and skull damage, which did not preclude the possibility of further
          complications. They also concluded that Danica Draskovic had suffered injury
          to her spine, and that in both cases injuries had been inflicted by repeated
          powerful action with a blunt mechanical instrument. They were released from
          custody on 9 July 1993. However, because of their poor medical condition they
          remained in the neurological clinic in Belgrade.
          633. On 14 December 1993 the Government replied that those members of
          Mr. and Mrs. Draskovic's family who had visited them had not stated that they
          had been seriously injured or that they had objections to their medical or any
          other treatment.
          634. On 13 October 1993 the Special Rapporteur sent un urgent appeal
          concerning Muhamet Hamiti, a writer and professor, who was arrested by the
          police in Pristina, Kosovo, on 12 October 1993 at around 11 a.m. after leaving
          a private house where he had been giving a class. In view of reports received
          indicating that students and teachers of Albanian origin were frequently
          arrested for short periods of time and subjected to torture or ill-treatment
          while being interrogated, fears were expressed that Mr. Hamiti might be
          subjected to this kind of treatment.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 129
          635. With respect to this case the Government replied on 4 November 1993 that
          no criminal or torts proceeding had been brought against a person named
          Muhamet Hamiti and that nobody by this name had been detained in the district
          prison since 12 October 1993.
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          636. On 19 January 1993 the Government provided the Special Rapporteur with
          information on the cases referred to in the following paragraphs, which had
          been communicated to it on 21 August 1992.
          637. Marco Mikela, a lawyer, died after he was arrested on 31 October 1991
          while leaving Pec for the village of Sutpe. According to the Government, the
          traffic patrol on the Pec-Stupe road stopped the car Marko Mikela was in, on
          31 October 1991. When asked to produce identification he refused and injured
          a policeman, then he tried to seize an automatic gun from one of the police
          who pushed him to the ground. He received a few scratches and bruises. At
          the police station, Marko Mikela became sick and was immediately taken to the
          neurosurgery clinic in Pristina, where he died on 11 November 1991. The
          doctor who performed the autopsy on him, stated that Mikela had died from
          natural causes. The police used force against Marko Mikela and the other
          passenger in his car, trying to repel their attack. No force was used against
          them in the police station.
          638. Ali Hadzija, a refugee from Albania living in Kosovo, died
          on 25 November 1991 after having been arrested by the police and taken
          to Urosevac. According to the Government, he was arrested under an order
          issued by the municipal court for petty offences in Urosevac. The next day
          he was taken to the district prison in Pristina where he died. The Forensic
          Institute of the Medical School in Pristina carried out an autopsy and found
          that he had died of a heart attack. When he was detained in the district
          prison, Ali Hadzija said nothing about his health condition.
          639. Rifati Redzep, a journalist of the Bujku magazine, and Selim Djizimi,
          principal of the elementary school in the village of Kamena Glava near
          Urosevac, were reportedly tortured in November 1991 at the police headquarters
          in Urosevac. According to the Government, they were brought to the police
          station because they organized the celebration of the National Day of Albania
          in the “Fazli Obradza” elementary school in Kamena Glava. The celebration was
          opened by playing the Albanian national anthem. The song sung and the verses
          read had nationalistic and hostile connotations. During the proceedings,
          Selim Djazimi was sentenced to 40 days' imprisonment for organizing the
          celebration, while Redzep Rifati was only interrogated. The allegations
          concerning the use of force against these persons were completely unfounded.
          640. Rustem Sefedini was allegedly severely beaten by the Urosevac police in
          October 1991. According to the Government, the allegations about physical
          ill-treatment were false. He was brought to the police station for having
          organized a protest of students, their parents, teachers and other people of
          Albanian origin against the school programmes. The municipal magistrate
          sentenced him to 60 days in prison for organizing an unauthorized rally,
          disparaging the authorities and disturbing citizens.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 130
          641. Ismet Krasnici was reportedly beaten at the police station in Pec
          on 29 January 1992. According to the Government, Mr. Krasnici and a group
          of ethnic Albanians forcibly entered the lobby of the “Dzemal Kada” elementary
          school in Pec and interrupted the classes in the Serbian language by shouts
          and noise. Mr. Krasnici insulted and tried to assault physically the
          principal. No force was used against him. He was being tried for a
          misdemeanour offence.
          642. Avdimetaj Amrusen was reportedly beaten by the police in Pec in
          October 1991. According to the Government, he was interrogated because he
          allegedly organized a school in the Albanian language at his home without
          permission. A group of students were found at the house on 3 October 1992 by
          the police, but no force was used against any of them.
          643. Enver Sinani was reported to have been beaten at the police station in
          Magura on 3 January 1992. According to the Government, Mr. Sinani was
          interrogated by police about the illegal possession of a weapon. He
          afterwards voluntarily handed over his gun and bullets. Proceedings were
          instituted against him. No force was used.
          644. Daut Krasnici, a student from Vranovci near Pec, was reported to have
          been beaten by police in October 1991. According to the Government, he was
          stopped in the street in Pec by police who asked for his identity card. He
          refused to produce it and was rude. He was sentenced to 20 days' imprisonment
          for a disdainful attitude towards the police.
          645. Muja Faruk, aged 12, was reported to have been beaten by police in Magura
          in April 1991. According to the Government, he was brought to the police
          station in February 1992, on suspicion of having committed the criminal act of
          grand larceny. He was released immediately after his arrest. No force was
          used against him.
          646. Mentor Kaci, Sokolj Dobruna and others were reported to have been
          ill-treated in Pec prison in December 1991. According to the Government, they
          were members of the clandestine hostile organization “Resistance and National
          Liberation Front of Albanians” (“National Front of Albanians”) . They were
          interrogated by the police and charges were filed against them. They were
          then brought before the examining judge of the district court in Pec. As for
          the allegations of their physical mistreatment, the infirmary records of the
          District Court in Pec registered the treatment of these patients for sore
          throats and similar health problems.
          647. Zenun Djeljaj and Ibrahim Osamni were reported to have been arrested
          on 20 June 1992 at the police check point just outside Peja. According to
          the Government, they were stopped by police in a regular traffic control on
          the Pec-Pristina highway. Some propaganda materials glorifying Albania,
          ridiculing the Serbian leadership, advocating the idea of establishing the
          “Republic of Kosovo”, etc., were found in their car. After interrogation
          at the police station, they were released. They were not subjected to any
          force.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 131
          648. The Government also reported that no information was found in
          official records on measures taken against the following persons:
          Ali (Redzep) Kadrijaj from Restovici near Decani; Fadil Kraljani from Pec;
          Jasar Salihadziaj from Radovici near Pec; Mirtzaj Bajramu from Pec; and
          Avdi Ulaj from Pristina.
          Observations
          649. During the period under review, the Special Rapporteur has received
          very little direct information on torture in the territory of the former
          Yugoslavia. Since the appointment in August 1992 of Mr. T. Mazowiecki as
          Special Rapporteur on the situation of human rights in the territory of the
          former Yugoslavia, the information received has been processed by his staff in
          Geneva and Zagreb and has been reflected during 1993 in the reports contained
          in documents E/cN.4/1994/3 of 5 May 1993; E/CN.4/1994/4 of 19 May 1993;
          E/CN.4/1994/6 of 26 August 1993; E/CN.4/1994/8 of 6 September 1993 and
          E/CN.4/1994/47 of 17 November 1993. This was done both to avoid duplication
          of efforts and to ensure a comprehensive approach to the former Yugoslavia, as
          well as to make optimum use of the expertise that the case requires. On the
          other hand, with respect to Bosnia and Herzegovina the Special Rapporteur's
          usual procedures for communicating allegations to the Government concerned
          cannot usefully be applied to a country where it is estimated that two thirds
          of the territory are not under the control of the recognized Government.
          United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland
          Information received from the Government on cases included in previous reports
          650. By letter dated 18 October 1991 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information alleging that Damien Austin,
          aged 17, had been subjected to ill-treatment at the Castlereagh detention
          centre in Belfast in May and August 1991.
          651. On 10 February 1993 the Government replied that the complaints from
          Mr. Austin related to his detention from 7 to 10 May 1991 and from 17 to
          20 August 1991. Following his release, on both occasions, he had made formal
          complaints about his treatment at the holding centre. The complaint in May
          was classified as incapable of investigation by the Independent Commission of
          Police Complaints (ICPC) under regulation 17 of the Royal Ulster Constabulary
          (RUC) Complaints Regulations 1988 because of the non-cooperation of
          Mr. Austin. When he was arrested in August he had already sustained some
          injuries, including a wound to his ear which had been treated and stitched.
          However, during his detention in Castlereagh it was alleged that he had been
          further injured, and his solicitor went to court for a writ of habeas corpus.
          Before the case was heard Austin was released. The complaint had been
          investigated by RUC, under the supervision of ICPC and a report had
          been forwarded to the Director of Public Prosecutions (Northern Ireland)
          DPP (NI) had issued an interim direction on 16 November 1992 stating that
          the consideration of the complaint would have to await the outcome of civil
          proceedings lodged by Mr. Austin. It would not be appropriate, therefore, to
          comment further until all civil, criminal or disciplinary proceedings had been
          completed.
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 132
          652. With respect to the safeguards against ill-treatment of persons detained
          in custody for questioning, the Government informed the Special Rapporteur
          that in the case of non-terrorist suspects the Police and Criminal Evidence
          (Northern Ireland) Act 1989 introduced safeguards affecting police power, the
          rights of persons in police detention, police discipline and complaints
          against the police. It also introduced codes of practice in connection with
          powers of search and seizure of property, detention, treatment, questioning
          and identification. This legislation constituted a major package of reforming
          legislation.
          653. All interviews with terrorist suspects under arrest were also subject
          to a range of statutory safeguards. Suspects under arrest were given the
          right to have someone informed of their arrest, to be informed of the grounds
          for their arrest and to consult a solicitor. The continued detention of a
          suspect had to be reviewed periodically by a review officer unconnected
          with the case. All interviews with terrorist suspects were monitored by
          uniformed officers (who had no other dealing with the case) with the aid
          of close-circuit television. In addition, the Government had announced
          that it would appoint an independent commissioner to oversee the holding
          centres.
          654. The procedure for investigation of complaints was governed by the Police
          (Northern Ireland) Order 1987. Complaints of ill-treatment were investigated
          by RUC. The investigation might be directly supervised by the Independent
          Commission for Police Complaints, if it so chose.
          655. Once the investigation had been completed, a full report, together with
          the views of the Deputy Chief Constable of RUC on the incident, was submitted
          to the Independent Commission for Police Complaints. Depending on the outcome
          of the investigation, the case might then be referred to the Director of
          Public Prosecutions for Northern Ireland, who was entirely independent of
          both police and government. Disciplinary charges might be brought against the
          police officer or officers concerned if this was thought necessary by the
          police or the Independent Commission for Police Complaints.
          United Republic of Tanzania
          Information transmitted to the Government
          656. By letter dated 26 August 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of reports he had received concerning Mahimbo Kaoneka, a retired
          civil servant and chairman of the registered political party Chama Cha
          Demokrasi , who was arrested on 19 December 1992 on Msimbazi Street,
          in the city centre of Dar es Salaam. He was taken to the Msimbazi
          police station where he was alleged to have been severely beaten by
          several officers, who did not tell him the reason for his arrest. He was
          released the following day. A doctor at the Muhimbili medical centre who
          examined him on 21 December found that one of his ribs had been broken and
          his right eye damaged.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 133
          Zaire
          Information transmitted to the Government and replies received
          657. By letter dated 3 November 1993 the Special Rapporteur advised the
          Government that he had received information according to which civilian
          opposition supporters, including members of the main opposition party, the
          Union for Democracy and Social Progress, as well as members of the security
          forces identified as opposition sympathizers, had been arrested and tortured,
          sometimes while held in secret detention centres. It was also reported that
          about 30 soldiers were arrested in January 1992 after occupying the national
          radio station in Kinshasa and broadcasting statements calling for the
          Government to resign. They were reportedly held incommunicado at Kinshasa's
          Tshatshi military barracks, where they were reported to have been regularly
          stripped and beaten with whips and gun butts, stabbed with bayonets and
          subjected to mock executions and, in some cases, sexually assaulted. Two
          months later, 11 of those arrested appeared at a trial before the Higher
          Martial Court, which refused to allow an independent investigation into
          claims by some of the defendants that they had been forced to make false
          incriminating statements under torture, and rejected demands by lawyers that
          they should be examined by a doctor.
          658. The case of Jean-Claude Bahai was also reported. This person was
          arrested in Kinshasa on 13 September 1992 by members of the Special
          Residential Division after criticizing the Government's policies in a private
          conversation. He was taken to the Tshatshi camp, where he was allegedly
          stripped naked, showered with a high pressure hose, beaten with military
          belts, burned with hot metal and shaved with broken bottle glass. He was also
          said to have been whipped some three times each day. He was released three
          days later. Although he reported his ordeal to the authorities, no
          investigation or disciplinary action was reportedly carried out.
          Urgent appeals
          659. The Special Rapporteur transmitted to the Government four urgent appeals
          on behalf of the persons referred to in the following paragraphs, regarding
          whom fears were expressed that they might be subjected to torture. The date
          on which the appeals were sent is mentioned in parenthesis at the end of the
          corresponding summary.
          660. Mukendi Wa Mulumba, lawyer, former president of the bar of Kinshasa and
          political adviser to the Prime Minister; Mpika, Major, security official of
          the Prime Minister; Nbaka, Lieutenant; Nyangele; Justin Mobikayi, protocol
          official of the Prime Minister; Michel Kembo; Olenga Nkoy, official
          representative of the Prime Minister; M. Akoy, journalist with the newspaper
          Umoja ; and Guillaume Ngefa Atondoko, President of the Zairian Association for
          the Defence of Human Rights. These persons were reportedly arrested on
          13 December 1992 at the Kinshasa airport while waiting for a French delegation
          whose members were active in the field of human rights. At the moment of the
          arrest they were allegedly beaten up by soldiers of the Special Presidential
          Division, then taken to the premises of the Civil Guard and from there
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 134
          transferred to the dungeons of the gendarmerie (CIRCO) . Mr. Ngef a Atondoko
          was reported to have been released while still at the airport, after having
          been beaten. (23 December 1993)
          661. Olenga Nkoy, adviser and official representative of Prime Minister
          Tshisekedi, was arrested on 29 April 1993 and taken to the CIRCO
          (“Circonscription militaire”) in Kinshasa where, according to witnesses, he
          was being tortured. He was reportedly charged with instigating a revolt
          against the legally established authority. (4 May 1993) Another urgent
          appeal was sent to the Government on behalf of Olenga Nkoy on 14 May 1993,
          given the fact that he had been reportedly released and again arrested a few
          days later.
          662. With respect to this case the Government replied on 9 August 1993 that
          Olenga Nkoy was being prosecuted for the following offences punishable under
          Zairian law: insulting the Head of State; incitement of the population
          against the established Government and inciting the armed forces to
          disobedience. A warrant for his provisional detention had been issued, in
          accordance with the regulations, by the judge in chambers and the officer of
          the Government Procurator's Office had made an application for judicial review
          to the Supreme Court of Justice. Meanwhile, the defendant remained in
          detention and could receive visitors.
          663. By virtue of the Penal Code, book 1, article 67, the Zairian Government
          characterized torture as a crime; therefore, it could not authorize or
          tolerate it. Consequently, the defendant was safe and sound and his physical
          integrity was inviolate.
          664. Tabura Kabuga, Musabimana, Nzabomimana, Ndambara, Kabunga, Ndayambaje,
          Kasuka, Muhozi and Kacuku wa Ngeyo, said to be part of a group of about
          20 members of the Banyarwanda ethnic group, were reportedly arrested on or
          around 13 August 1993 in Goma, in the region of Kivu Nord, in the eastern
          part of the country. Shortly after the arrest, they were allegedly taken
          to Kinshasa, but their exact place of detention was not known.
          (1 September 1993)
          Zambia
          Information transmitted to the Government
          665. By letter dated 29 October 1993 the Special Rapporteur informed the
          Government of allegations he had received concerning Cuthbert Ngune, Member of
          Parliament for Chipata, and Henry Kamima, former head of security when the
          United National Independence Party was in government. They were reportedly
          arrested at the beginning of March 1993 under the Preservation of Public
          Security Regulations which came into force after a state of emergency was
          declared on 4 March 1993. It was alleged that Mr. Nguni was questioned
          without a break for 39 hours, during which time he was made to balance on two
          bricks, to perform exercises that involved spinning in one place to induce
          dizziness and that when he fell to the ground he was kicked. Mr. Kanima was
          reported to have been tied to a chair and punched.
        
          
          E/cN. 4/1994/3 1
          page 135
          III. CONCLUSIONS AND RECOMMENDATIONS
          666. As in previous years, it must be concluded that torture occurs,
          lamentably, in a significant number of countries. It is virtually axiomatic
          that situations where torture is systematically practised are characterized by
          one or both of the following phenomena:
          (a) The legal system does not provide the institutional safeguards
          needed to restrain law enforcement officials and members of security forces
          from resorting to abusive and illegal behaviour to achieve their aims. In
          particular, persons suspected of crimes or of possessing information relevant
          to the detection of crime are left in the hands of their interrogators without
          access to the outside world or other authoritative external supervision. In
          effect, they are detained incommunicado. They cannot call the outside world
          to their aid and their captors and interrogators presume they are insulated
          from external interference. Indeed, in this sense, this element is connected
          with the second one.
          (b) Those conducting the torture enjoy de lure or de facto impunity.
          De lure impunity generally arises where legislation provides indemnity from
          legal process in respect of acts to be committed in a particular context or
          exemption from legal responsibility in respect of acts that have in the past
          been committed, for example, by way of amnesty or pardon. De facto impunity
          occurs where those committing the acts in question are in practice insulated
          from the normal operation of the legal system. Such immunity may begin with
          the absence of safeguards of the sort mentioned in (a) above. Sometimes the
          safeguards may be formally in place and applicable, but those charged with
          maintaining public order are allowed to become “a law unto themselves” or,
          more accurately, the law is prevented from reaching their acts. Legality and
          the rule of law are dispensed with. In the case of torture, grave crimes are
          committed in the name of maintaining public order. Nothing can be more
          corrosive of general respect for law, without which no organized society can
          in the long term be secure.
          667. The United Nations is aware of these phenomena. It was in the context
          of its efforts to combat torture that the General Assembly, in its
          resolutions 3218 (XXIX) and 3453 (XXX) , set in motion the drafting of the
          instrument that was to become the Body of Principles for the Protection of
          All Persons under Any Form of Detention or Imprisonment. This instrument
          constitutes a compilation of safeguards, respect for which would radically
          inhibit the incidence of torture in the world. Of crucial importance in this
          respect are Principles 15, 16, 18, 19, 24, 25, 29, 32 and 33. In this
          context, the Special Rapporteur recalls the words of Principle 15 whereby
          “communication of the detained or imprisoned person with the outside world,
          and in particular his family or counsel, shall not be denied for more than a
          matter of days”
          668. As regards impunity, the World Conference on Human Rights evinced a
          general concern with the problem in the Vienna Declaration and Programme of
          Action, part II, paragraph 91 of which states:
          “91. The World Conference on Human Rights views with concern the issue
          of impunity of perpetrators of human rights violations, and supports the
        
          
          E/CN. 4/1994/31
          page 136
          efforts of the Commission on Human Rights and the Sub-Commission on
          Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of Minorities to examine all
          aspects of the issue.”
          In addition, concerning the specific issue of torture, part II, paragraph 60
          states:
          “60. States should abrogate legislation leading to impunity for those
          responsible for grave violations of human rights such as torture and
          prosecute such violations, thereby providing a firm basis for the rule of
          law.”
          669. Furthermore, in resolution 1993/40, under which the Special Rapporteur
          was appointed, the Commission on Human Rights endorsed the recommendation of
          his predecessor that whenever a complaint of torture is found to be justified,
          the perpetrators should be severely punished, especially the official in
          charge of the place of detention where the torture is found to have taken
          place. (E/CN.4/1992/17, para. 294 (i)
          670. In the final analysis, the elimination of torture is a matter of
          political will. Its persistence is testimony to the failure of political
          will. Where it occurs the absence of safeguards and the prevalence of
          impunity is the measure of the gap between the commitment to its eradication
          and the political will required to enforce the commitment.
          671. The Special Rapporteur appreciates the spirit of cooperation shown by
          those Governments that have responded to information he has transmitted to
          them. Yet he cannot conceal his disappointment at the incidence of responses
          that seem designed more to camouflage rather than deal with serious situations
          characterized by torture, such as flat denials, references to unspecified or
          unsubstantiated investigations, references to legal procedures that have
          already been so compromised as to be incapable of affording the inquiry or
          information or remedy they are alleged to be able to afford. There is no
          dearth of recommendations that may be made to Governments seriously committed
          to ending torture. Most of them have been made by the previous Special
          Rapporteur and endorsed by the Commission. The Special Rapporteur confirms
          his own view as to their value and commends them for serious action by
          Governments.
        

Download Attachments:

Show More

Related Articles

Back to top button